Countdown To Catastrophe Palestine 1948 A Daily Chronology Hugh Humphries
Countdown To Catastrophe Palestine 1948 A Daily Chronology Hugh Humphries
Countdown To Catastrophe Palestine 1948 A Daily Chronology Hugh Humphries
Palestine 1948
a daily chronology
Hugh Humphries
in collaboration with Ross Campbell
"no settlement can be just and complete if recognition is not accorded to the
right of the Arab refugee to return to the home from which he was dislodged by
the hazards and strategy of the armed conflict between Arabs and Jews in
Palestine. . . . . It would be an offence against the principles of elemental justice
if these innocent victims of the conflict were denied the right to return to their
homes while Jewish immigrants flow into Palestine, and, indeed, at least offer
the threat of permanent replacement of the Arab refugees who have been rooted
in the land for centuries."
Count Folke Bernadotte,UN Special Mediator to Palestine
Progress Report,GAOR,3rd Sess., Supp No.11
at 14, UN Doc A/648 (1948)
acknowledgement
This book could not have been published without assistance from the The League of
Arab States, London Mission. Scottish Friends of Palestine acknowledge this assistance and express
their gratitude.
ISBN 0 9521210 2 6
This chronology, and the detail contained therein, would not have been possible
without the able assistance of my collaborator, Ross Campbell. It was Ross who
trawled the pages of the many volumes of books and journals, cross-referencing
the events with the dates. No detail was too small, if it could be chronologically
identified. I am indebted to his enthusiasm and patience.
Any errors or opinion expressed are my responsibility.
In researching the many newspapers and books outlining the events of 1948,
both Ross and me learned much of which we had previously been unaware. In
particular, the tenacity with which the Palestinian people clung to their land,
until terror forced them to seek refuge elsewhere. Like anybody in such
circumstances, few could believe that the events unfolding around them
throughout 1948 were the result of military and strategic intent, designed to
dispossess them of their heritage forever.
Of the many accounts recorded for that fateful year, one which made a lasting
impact, was that of Palestinian youths, towards the end of March, in earnest
conversation in the courtyard of the Church of the Holy Sepulchre. With the
noise of military activity, from the Bethlehem area, in the background, The
Scotsman correspondent recorded their hesitation. Should they join the
congregation in the Church or find a vantage point to observe the military
action? At the toss of a coin it was decided. Forget their religious devotions for
the rest of the day. Go and enjoy the action.
Before long what appeared as a game to the youths, turned into a nightmare
which resulted in the outright expulsion or flight 750 000 men, women and
children, the young, the sick and the elderly.
This book is dedicated to those same people.
Hugh Humphries
Contents
p. i Glossary
p. iii Introduction
p. v Comment on sources and structure of the chronology
p. 3 January
.... if it was not for the open [Zionist military] preparations which had
provocative nature the drift into war could have been averted
p. 30 February
In view of the Zionist desire to reduce the number of Arabs in the proposed
Jewish state it follows that orders to expel Arabs......were interpreted
liberally by most Haganah officers
p. 55 March
Outwardly, he [David Ben Gurion] continued until very late in the day to pay
requisite lip service to the grand humanist- socialist ideals . . . . on the ground,
however, he made sure that what he wanted got done, and he carefully avoided
leaving tracks; his name rarely adorns an actual expulsion directive
p. 87 April
[At the village of Deir Yassin]There were twenty five people, twenty four were
killed and only one could escape through a window. . . In another house they
captured a boy who was holding the knee of his mother. They slaughtered her in front
of him
p. 138 May
p. 192 June
By their past encouragement of the terrorists, whom they secretly supported whilst
publicly denouncing them, the Jewish leaders have created a Frankenstein which
will eventually cause them far more trouble than it ever caused the British
p. 220 July
Children were dying, as were the sick and the elderly. The dead were covered with
stones, branches and a quick prayer. Children, abandoned, were wandering about
crying
p. 258 August
the right of Arab refugees to return to their homes at the earliest possible
moment should be reaffirmed
p. 283 September
p. 304 October
This is something that determines the character of a nation. . . . Jews too have
committed Nazi acts
p. 336 November
They abandon the villages of their birth and that of their ancestors and go
into exile . . . . . women, children, babies, donkeys - everything moves, in
silence and grief, northwards, without looking to right or left
p. 356 December
p. 368 Appendix
Glossary
Arab Liberation Army (ALA) - a force of about 5 000 men, mostly Syrian and
Iraqi irregulars, organised in December 1947 to help the Palestinians
Ben Gurion, David - Chairman of the Jewish Agency, Israel's first prime
minister and first minister of defence
Eshkol, Levi - the treasurer of the Haganah
Haganah (Defence) - left wing Zionist paramilitary force and eventual Israeli
regular army; 35 000 members in May 1947
Irgun (Irgun Zvai Leumi) - National Military Organisation; 3 000 to 5 000
members
Jewish Agency - the pre-state government of the Yishuv
Jewish National Fund - established in 1901 as the land acquisition and
administrative arm of the World Zionist Organisation (Land bought through the
JNF could be neither sold nor mortgaged, remaining in perpetual trust for
Jewish people)
Machnes, Gad - Director General, Minority Affairs Ministry
Mapai - Israeli socialist Zionist party, forerunner of the Israeli Labour Party
Mapam - a Soviet inclined breakaway group from Mapai of which the majority
of the Haganah commanders were members (re-absorbed into Mapai in 1948)
Meir (Myerson), Golda - Director of the Jewish Agency's Political Department
in Jerusalem and eventual prime minister
Palmach (Shock Troops) - commandos in the Haganah; 2 200 members
Introduction
On November 29th 1947 the United Nations General Assembly, in its wisdom,
adopted Resolution 181 which resulted in the eventual partition of the land of
Palestine. From that point onwards both the British presence and control over
events in Palestine dwindled until the British Mandate came to an end on 15
May 1948.
During this period of time, and beyond, the Jewish Zionist colonisers, who from
the time of the Balfour Declaration had firmly entrenched themselves on the
land, fought a bitter battle against both the British and Palestinian Arab
presence in Palestine. It resulted in the eventual permanent expulsion of
approximately 750 000 Palestinians from their land, the destruction and
demolition of over 400 Palestinian villages. This took place together with the
plunder and acquisition of Arab houses, private property, bank accounts and
business concerns. Actions which were given a legal gloss in the immediate
aftermath of the foundation of the Israeli state.
Throughout 1998 Israel celebrated her achievements together with the 50th
anniversary of her "independence". At the same time the Palestinian nation
commemorated the 50th anniversary of al-Nakba - the catastrophe. Hundreds of
thousands remembered the day they were either driven from their homes or fled
their homes to escape the fighting and the threat of death. Many, 50 years
previously, thought they were leaving only for a few days, to return after the
fighting receded. Few, if any, thought that it would turn out to be an
interminable exile, with their homes either being demolished or occupied by
strangers.
This aspect of the struggle to establish and enlarge the State of Israel was
ignored by Israel and her friends. They chose to ignore the catastrophe which
the Zionist state invited, and continues to invite, on the heads of the Palestinian
people. Actions, which by any definition of the word, can only be summed up
as "genocide". At that point of time, with the ending of World War II, the
Palestinians became the "victims of the victims."
Many people, even in Israel, are ignorant of the foundations of the Israeli state.
[ See "By Dint of Whitewash not Confusion: The Portrayal of the Arab-Israeli
Conflict in Israeli History and Civics Textbooks, 1955-95" Eli Podeh Gitelson
Peace Publn. 1997 (Hebrew)]. Many friends of Israel are likewise ignorant.
Many simply do not understand why the Middle East has turned out to be the
cauldron we saw yesterday, see to-day and, despite peace efforts, predict for
tomorrow.
For the Palestinian people who either live under a still brutal military
occupation, as refugees in surrounding Arab states or as citizens in their
adopted country, the events of 1998 must have rekindled any latent anger.
During 1998 the sanctity of UN resolutions was trumpeted throughout the
media, world wide, with regard to Iraq. If the same resolve, with regard to UN
resolutions, had been observed over the past 50 years in the pursuit of
Palestinian rights then the Middle East would be a totally different place today.
The substance of this chronology is based on research carried out for the
production of daily e mails sent out by Scottish Friends of Palestine throughout
1998. The e mails catalogued those events that affected both the land and the
people of Palestine fifty years earlier.
The chronology should be regarded as "an invitation" to the reader to find
out more about the Palestinian people, the land and the history of both. By no
stretch of the imagination is it exhaustive.
To understand current events there must be an understanding and
appreciation of those past events which affected hundreds of thousands of
innocent Palestinians. The reality of the catastrophic events which overtook the
Palestinian nation during 1948 is the mirror image of the "independence"
achieved by the State of Israel during that year. Without the catastrophe there
would have been no Israeli 50th anniversary celebrations during 1998. There
would be no Palestinian refugees, now about 5 000 000 in number, waiting for
their rights to be acknowledged. And, to this day, Israel continues to pretend
that the refugees do not exist and that she is not responsible, in any way, for
their situation. She considers that they certainly have no claims on the land
from which they were expelled over half a century ago.
This book, it is hoped, contributes to the understanding of past events thus
helping pave the way for that elusive, well overdue, measure of justice for the
Palestinian people.
The Irgun and Stern Gang were terrorist organisations. The Haganah was
the official "defence" body which acted on behalf of Palestine's Jewry. However
when the activities of the Haganah are compared with those of the Irgun and
Stern Gang, there is little to differentiate between them. All were expert in
terrorising the Palestinian civil population. In the end the temptation to prefix
the names of these bodies with the word "terrorist" was resisted
Finally, there was one important change made to the recording of
contemporary reports of events in Palestine. The newspaper reports always
made reference to the actions of the "Jews" when referring to Palestine's Zionist
Jewish community. However it was felt to be important to acknowledge the fact
that not all Jews are Zionists, just as all Zionists are not Jews. Where the reports
clearly made reference to the actions or words of Zionist Jews then, throughout
the book, the word "Jew" has been replaced by "Zionist."
With emotions running high the Mandate authorities asked the Jewish
Agency to use its influence to ensure that captains of ships approaching
Palestine with illegal Zionist immigrants divert to Cyprus. Mrs Golda Myerson
(the future Israeli prime minister, Golda Meir) and her escort were stopped and
their car searched. The female escort was found in possession of a Sten gun and
arrested. However this was the start of the Mandate government's instruction to
military personnel to abstain from searching cars and removing "defensive"
weapons, so the escort was freed.
As it was, the army had plenty with which to occupy its time. With three
trains being plundered during the course of the day, manpower was being
diverted to guard communications, post offices and the courts. Few troops were
available to act as a buffer between the Palestinian Arab and the Zionist Jew.
And so began the year of 1948.
January
.... if it was not for the open [Zionist military] preparations
which had a provocative nature the drift into war could have
been averted.
Gad Machnes, Director General, Israeli Ministry of Minority Affairs
As the year unfolded, the Zionist penchant for use of figurative language to
describe its various "Military Operations", against both civilian populations and
those who resisted them militarily, became clear. It also became clear that these
operations could be aptly described in the vogue words of the nineties as
"ethnic cleansing" or, when the extent of the eventual devastation of Palestinian
society became obvious, "genocide."
And it was right at the start (if not before) that the intentions of the
Zionists were aired. Perhaps not in the public but certainly behind closed doors.
Yosef Weitz recorded in his diary
"Is it not now the time to be rid of them ? Why continue to keep in our midst
these thorns at a time when they pose a danger to us ?"4
Yosef Weitz, director of the Jewish National Fund, was responsible for "local
evictions and expulsion operations" against Palestinians and for allocating land
to Jewish colonial settlements. From January to March 1948 Weitz was
responsible for expelling the local Palestinian population from RamotMenashe, Beit Shean Valley and Western Galilee.
As director of the Jewish National Fund, Weitz served on the Population
Transfer Committee of the Jewish Agency. In a report he wrote that the 'transfer'
of the Arab population from Jewish areas
"does not serve only one aim - to diminish the Arab population. It also serves a
second purpose by no means less important, which is to evacuate the land now
cultivated by Arabs and thus release it for Jewish settlement."5
Dr Yacov Thon, who served on the same Committee and was, ironically, a
founding member of an 'ultra-liberal' group which sought reconciliation and
accommodation with the Arabs revealed his intentions at secret committee
meetings
"Without transferring the Arab peasants to neighbouring lands, we will not be
able to bring into our future state a large new population. In short without
transfer there can be no Jewish immigration."5
These sentiments were shared by Irgun leader and Israeli prime-minister to-be,
Menachem Begin
"My greatest worry in those months was that the Arabs might accept the United
Nations plan. Then we would have the ultimate tragedy, a Jewish state so small
that it could not absorb all the Jews of the world".6
As a terrorist leader Begin was well placed to ensure that the Palestinian Arab
would never reach agreement with the Zionists. He was also well placed to
facilitate their 'transfer' elsewhere.
By mid-January units of the Arab Liberation Army from Syria were in action in
Palestine, with little success. Their efforts in the face of the determined Zionists
-members of both the Haganah and the Irgun had been trained under the British
- were never going to achieve much at this stage. And as long as Palestine was
still being governed under the British Mandate, the armies of the surrounding
Arab states were loathe to break international law and intervene.
The perception of the struggle ahead by the two major protagonists was always
going to be a major determinant of the final outcome.
A number of quotes from Aluf Ygal Yadin, Israel's first chief of operations
clearly outlined the Zionist position
"We had made an intelligence survey. We went through every village in
Palestine, and estimated its character, whether it meant trouble or not;
and we had a map in which the strategic characters of every Arab village
and the quality of its inhabitants were indicated. We had a library of files
some 27 000 experienced Jewish veterans who had served with the British
army, some of whom formed the commando units, the Palmach.12
In contrast only about 12 000 Palestinian Arabs had served with the
British.
January 1
David Ben Gurion, Chairman of the Jewish Agency, met to assess the attack (on
Dec.18th) on the village of Khisas [pop 530 incl. 40 Jews] close to the
intersection of the borders of Lebanon, Syria and Palestine. Members of the
Haganah , under night cover, attacked with bullets and grenades.The death toll
was reported as ten dead, including five children. A Haganah spokesman said
that it was "unfortunate" that small sleeping children should have fallen victim
to"that kind of attack". However as Israeli historian Benny Morris observed, use
of "excessive force" was, in the long run, fruitful.
In the early hours of the morning Zionist forces attacked the village of Balad alShaykh [pop. 4 120] at the foot of Mount Carmel outside Haifa. At the end of
half an hour's fighting 17 Palestinians, including one woman, were dead; 33
were injured including eight women and nine children. Jewish casualties were
three dead and two wounded.
It was reported that the Jewish workers at various work places within
Haifa, including the refinery, were demanding Jewish guards for protection.
However the authorities were quite clear that the deaths of the 38 Jewish
workers (some sources referred to 41 deaths) had not been premeditated. They
vehemently denied that the Arab guards at the refinery had removed dinner
knives, scissors etc from entering Jewish workers.
It was also clear that most Jews in Haifa were not prepared to face the fact
that provocation had taken place when the Irgun had thrown the bomb two days
earlier.
At least 12 Jews and four Arabs were injured in bomb throwing and shooting
incidents in Haifa. The resolve of the Arab population in and around Haifa was
seriously damaged by these incidents.
A group of gunmen in battledress, believed to be Zionists, crashed
through an Arab roadblock in Jaffa, raking the street with automatic weapons.
Ten Arabs were wounded. Earlier, four Arabs and two Jews were killed with 31
Arabs wounded when Zionists attacked a Palestinian village near Haifa.
The Haganah claimed to have 'executed' a German and a Pole 'found guilty of
collaborating with the enemy'. The bodies of two men were subsequently found
on the outskirts of Rehavia, a Jewish residential suburb of Jerusalem.
The Government's instructions to British forces to abstain from searching cars
hotel had not been accepting guests for some time and any non-Arab casualties
must have been cooperating with the "Arab gangs." In reality the hotel was
housing, amongst other people, 16 relatives of the owner, one of Jerusalem's
leading Christian families. His two maiden sisters, who were amongst the dead,
had left their homes "for greater safety."
A British report called the atrocity "wholesale murder of innocent people".
However it had its effect. The hotel was situated in the Katamon district of West
Jerusalem, populated by mainly Christian Palestinians some Muslims and
British residents. Some residents of Katamon fled the fighting, their homes
being dynamited soon after.
"One of my most vivid memories of that wretched time was the Haganah attack
on the Semiramis Hotel.......It so happened that there was a torrential
thunderstorm that night, and when the explosion came, it was almost like
another clap of thunder. ...... My brother and I were terrified, and I can
remember my mother dragging us from our beds onto the floor and pressing us
against the wall. I did not understand that it was an explosion and kept asking
if the glow in the sky was the sun rising. The exact events are blurred in my
memory, but what remains vivid is the terror of my parents and the fear that
began to grip me as I saw
The 1948 Exodus: a family story - Ghada Karmi
January 6
At 2am Royal Engineers rescued a mother and her dead baby from the debris of
the Semiramis Hotel. The Palestine Government issued a strong denial that the
Semiramis Hotel had been used as a base for "marauding gangs" as alleged by
the Haganah. The latter's reaction at being accused of "dastardly and wholesale
murder of innocent people" was to feign indignation at the Government
statement, questioning why they had not reacted to "similar murders by Arabs."
An army lieutenant and a British police officer were shot dead during an
attempt to disarm an Arab mourner at a funeral procession on the Acre Haifa
road. A British policeman was killed in Jaffa.
Two hundred British soldiers were reported to have demolished Palestinian road
blocks around Tulkarem, warning that they would shoot to prevent them being
rebuilt.
Two female members of the Haganah were each fined 400 or three years in
prison for "unlawfully carrying two Sten guns and six hand grenades." It was a
common practice for the women to carry the weapons since only those found
carrying the weapons were arrested. This tactic avoided the arrest of the male
fighters.
The Arab Higher Executive Committee approved the formation of what
effectively amounted to a shadow Government for Palestine.
January 7
Following the attack by the Palmach, six days earlier, on the village of Balad alShayk near Haifa, the village was partially evacuated. Some reports indicated
the massacre of more than 60 people.
[Author's note: Balad al-Shaykh contains the tomb of Sheikh Izz al-Din alQassan who was killed by the British in 1935. The military wing of the Islamic
Resistance Movement, Hamas, is named after the Sheikh.]
Fifteen Palestinians were killed and 41 (including a British sergeant and
two British policemen) wounded in two bombings carried out by the Irgun at
Jaffa Gate, Jerusalem. The terrorists, driving an armoured car given to the
Jewish settlement police, and taken earlier from a Jewish garage, wearing stolen
police caps threw or rolled a bomb into the patrons of an Arab cafe, drove a
further distance and flung out another bomb. Before the armoured car crashed,
the terrorists sprayed onlookers with Sten gun fire. The bombers, believed to be
the Irgun, were either caught or shot dead. It was believed that the attack was a
token protest at the Arab hold over Jaffa Gate, which cut off Jewish access to
the Old City. Later the Irgun issued a statement saying that it was determined to
destroy all Arab road-blocks leading to the Old City or any area in Palestine.
Two British soldiers were shot and wounded elsewhere in Jerusalem. In the
Sheikh Jarrah quarter, to the north of the city, armed Jews and Arabs faced each
other with two Jews being killed and three wounded. With all Jewish and Arab
employees staying away, the work of the main post office and the courts had
almost ground to a halt.
There was no progress to report in the attempt to get all religious leaders
to sign a general appeal for the Old City to be free from violence.
The Scotsman reported that "The Arabs have far to go before they can catch up
with the well armed Jewish forces who have the big advantage that in the
hidden factories in Tel Aviv and Petakh Tiqva home made rifles and sten gun
copies from British samples are being turned out by the hundreds."
It was estimated that 500 people had been killed since the passing of the
partition resolution at the end of November.
January 8
The reportedly 80 000 strong Haganah organisation announced a policy of
"aggressive self-defence." The policy of shoot and bomb first then ask questions
later was described as "new." A term which certainly belied its activities to date
and which completely avoided any mention of the various pre-planned military
operations which were to descend upon the Palestinian civilian population, with
such devastating consequences, in the coming months.
With the Palmach "strike force", at the forefront the policy of "aggressive
self-defence" The Scotsman commented that with the "violent, bloody attacks
upon apparently inoffensive Arabs . . . any sympathy the Jews had won was
dissipated with the smoke of the burnt out Arab villages." Apparently "This
masterpiece of humbug is on the lips af all Jews. It was concocted in the inner
sanctum of the Jewish Agency and thus legalises any act of wanton murder
committed in its name."
Fifteen people were killed during the course of the day, including one British
policeman. More than 1 000 Jews were reported to be besieged in the Jewish
Quarter of the Old City of Jerusalem. Throughout the city there were continual
bursts of machine gun and pistol fire, with the army ferreting out snipers.
Eighty Irgun gunmen raided a first-aid clinic to remove a wounded comrade.
The first convoy of Iraqi volunteers, consisting of 90 commandos, left Baghdad
en route to Palestine.
For the first time, the question of a Palestine "security force" was raised at the
United Nations. With France due to take over the Chair of the Security Council
next month the idea of a force akin to the French Foreign Legion was mooted.
American Zionist Jews were reported to be preparing a campaign to have
the US arms embargo lifted. The intention was to ask for arms to be provided
on a lend-lease basis. A propaganda campaign had been started to persuade the
American public that Britain was to blame for events in Palestine, with the
American Zionist Emergency Council at the forefront. It was reported that
200 000 was to be despatched to the Jewish Labour Group in Palestine which
claimed to provide more than 70% of the manpower for the Haganah.
January 9
A group of Zionists from Yavne attacked 'Wadi Sukrayr' (Suqrir) [pop. 390] to
the north of Gaza. A counter-attack was launched by the police. Eight Arabs and
12 Haganah scouts were reported killed. A Haganah intelligence report, dated
two days later, recommended that
"the village should be destroyed completely and some males from the village
should be murdered."
This was the first operational proposal by the Haganah to demolish and level a
village.14
The first attack on an isolated Zionist settlement took place at Kefar Szold, a
kibbutz in the north of Palestine, by a unit of the Arab Liberation Army from
Syria.
The Scotsman reported that a total of three Zionist settlements were
attacked by about 600 fighters from this "Arab band" which had crossed the
border from Syria that morning. British troops and aircraft dispersed the
attackers, but not before the waterworks controlling the marshes of the Huleh
were blown up.
The village of Khisas contributed to the Arab firepower. Recently the
Haganah had attacked the village. Their calling card had been one house blown
up leaving five children dead. The Haganah claimed that the British troops
fought side by side with the Arabs. Three Jewish deaths were recorded.
A three cornered Arab-British-Jewish fight took place in southern Palestine
when an Arab force of about 100 fighters besieged the colony of Ramat Rachel.
Twelve Jews and eight Arabs were reported killed. One British police officer
was injured.
In Jerusalem the police ordered the evacuation of the Jewish hospital, on the
Arab-Jewish border, in the Old City.
The Stern Gang threatened that those newspaper correspondents who had
accepted "Press cards" from the Arab Higher Committee would be considered
to have "forfeited privileges and immunity." The demand for such cards came
from the substantial American press corp in the area, one of whom had been
"molested" in Transjordan by Arabs.
An illegal shipment of 5 200 combat knives and tons of surplus army
explosives, destined for Zionist forces in Palestine, were seized in New Jersey.
Three lorry loads of demolition charges were seized in Ulster County, en route
to the business associate of a "Zionist leader."
Members of the British Administration were told to make domestic
arrangements for leaving Palestine at a months notice.
January 11
Zionist forces demolished the strategically important Bridge of Jacob's
Daughters over the River Jordan. It was part of the transit route from Syria to
Palestine which was used by Syrian fighters a few days previously.
The settlement of Kfar Uriah, on the Jerusalem Jaffa railway, was attacked
by Arab forces. Zionist sources spoke of 10 Jewish fatalities in a fight lasting
hours. Arab casualties were unknown. Eventually British armoured cars drove
off the attackers.
The FBI uncovered a fund of 194 000 for purchase of explosives in the USA
in support of the Zionist cause while investigating a shipment of 199 tons of
cyclonite, an explosive considerably more explosive than TNT. A statement
issued by the Jewish Agency made great play of the fact that arms were
required for "defence" but made no effort to explain why explosives,
particularly suitable for demolition work, would be used for "defence"
purposes.
At a meeting with Ben Gurion, Arab affairs adviser, Ezra Danin, while
commenting on the effectiveness of the Arab forces in controlling the main
roads and the use of retaliation against local villages to combat this, advised
that
"our friends among the Arabs inform us that a severe blow, with a high rate of
casualties to the Arabs would increase Arab fear and would render external
Arab intervention ineffective."
Ten days earlier Gad Machnes had advised Ben Gurion along the same lines
"we need a cruel and brutal retaliating policy, we have to be accurate in time,
that there was no pre-planned military strategy involved. Apparently it was led
by a Palestinian fighter, sentenced to life imprisonment 10 years previously,
who had escaped from Acre prison when it had earlier been attacked by Zionist
forces. The Arab Higher Executive and the British Assistant District
Commissioner were called to intercede.
Zionist sources claimed that 100 of the attackers had been blown up
on surrounding mine fields. Arab sources put their own dead at about 12
and claimed to have killed defenders
A number of street murders and attempted murders took took place in Jerusalem
with Jews, and one British officer with a Jewish wife, being the victims. The
latter two were killed by attackers. Some Jews leaving their property in the area
of the King David Hotel were confronted by Arabs demanding identity papers.
On refusing, one woman was abducted, to be found later lying in the street
injured. A British officer who went looking for her was shot and injured.
Explosions could be heard to the north of the city, the result of Zionist
mortar fire. The Sheikh Jarrah area was subject to a mortar bombardment
described as "one of the heaviest attacks of the present disorders." Observers on
Mount Scopus watched mortars crashing through the roofs of the houses in this
densely built-up and populated area. The approach roads to the area had been
mined to hinder Arab and British reinforcements from reaching the scene.
With religious leaders having no success in trying to bring peace to the city, the
Haganah and political spokesmen spoke of trouble to come if the Arab "siege"
was not lifted and Jews allowed free access in and out of Jerusalem.
An attack was made on the car of the Iraqi consulate-general on the road
between Hebron and Jerusalem. It was felt that it could have been a case of
mistaken identity since it was only Arab forces that were active in the area.
In Haifa, Palestinians planted a bomb in a post office van resulting in the death
of six Jews.
The Times posed the $64 000 question:
"Are there any prospects of settlement in Palestine after Britain's abandonment
of the mandate and subsequent withdrawal ?"
The article pointed out that "Jewish extremists" realised that they had much to
gain by striking quickly, before the Arabs could organise themselves. Such
action could sway or force the hands of the more "moderate Zionist". Arab
objection to partition and the projected boundaries was only one factor making
for war. The other was the belief that the Zionists would not be satisfied with
their allotted State and would
troops should rescue the besieged Jews. The Scotsman reported that British
troops do regularly penetrate Arab barricades to ensure that food gets into the
city. They bring out the aged, the sick, women with new-born babies. They even
take in doctors, nurses and those residents trapped outside.
The role of British forces in protecting Jewish convoys was reported. Escorting
food convoys to Jerusalem was now a regular feature. The RAF was now being
used to protect potash convoys from Jericho to Jerusalem.
At the Security Council, Britain reaffirmed its position that British troops would
not be involved in enforcing partition. As if in anticipation of a Jewish Agency
demand that the UN take appropriate military steps to enforce the resolution,
the Philippines drafted a reqest to the Security Council. It asked that an
international military force be available to the Palestine Commission to support
its task in enforcing partition once the British withdrew.
January 16
A British report to the UN estimated 1 974 deaths or injuries between 30
November (the day after the UN partition resolution was passed) and 10
January. Those killed included 295 Arabs, 262 Jews and 30 British. Increasingly
British forces were being called upon to protect Jewish convoys travelling to
outlying areas, with the RAF playing an increasingly important role. Jewish
convoys conveying potash between Jerusalem and Jericho had the protection of
a single plane. Six spitfires together with tanks and other ground support
dispersed an Arab force of up to 3 000 who had surrounded four settlements in
the Hebron area.
On the road to Mount Scopus a vehicle carrying mostly Jewish members of the
Palestine Police Band was attacked and crashed. It caused one death and two
injuries. On the same road an armour plated Jewish bus was attacked with two
passengers being injured.
The Haganah blew up three Palestinian houses in Haifa as a reprisal for
bombing of the Jewish bus terminal two days earlier.
In the first house eight children between the ages of 18 months and 12
years were slaughtered. One woman, aged 25 years, was killed. Four men and
three children were injured. It was alleged that this house was a "centre for Arab
gangsters". In the second house five Palestinians were killed with five reported
yet to be recovered from the rubble. In the third house there were no reported
casualties.
Further attacks resulted in the destruction of a bus garage and 19 buses
together with a number of Arab homes.
During the course of the day, in attacks attributed to Arab assailants, two British
soldiers were shot, one fatally. Two others were stabbed by Arab attackers in
Haifa. A goods train was held up and robbed by presumed Arab assailants. A
policeman was killed when his bus came under fire. Eleven Zionists, in
possession of armaments ranging from pistols to grenades, were arrested by
police.
One Zionist was arrested in Haifa following sniping from the area. Three
Zionists travelling in an armoured bus were arrested when they were found in
possession of pistols and grenades.
Eighty heavily armed Zionists from Hebron settlements were ambushed as they
set out to carry out (dawn) raids on nearby Palestinian villages. Mules, Bren
guns, Tommy guns and rifles were captured. A further battle developed when a
similar raiding party from Kfar Etzion settlement was also ambushed. Palestine
Police reported that 100 Zionist fighters had attacked the village of Surif,
reputed to be the HQ of Arab guerrilla leader, Abdul Kader Husseini.
Former RAF pilot, Ezer Weizmann, nephew of the Zionist leader,Dr Weizmann,
was arrested when he admitted firing upon the Spitfire the previous day.
Zionist sources claimed to have killed 82 Palestinian Arabs in the previous 24
hours.
January 17
Thirty five Haganah fighters and four Arab fighters were reported dead in the
proximity of the settlement of Kfar Etzion near the village of Surif, 12 miles
south-west of Jerusalem. Reports varied, with the Zionists claiming that their
forces were ambushed while on their way by foot to reinforce the settlement. In
total, two Zionist parties were ambushed. Later in the day a further Zionist
force of about 100 men was reported to have attacked Surif, the HQ of the Arab
guerrilla leader, Abdul Kader Husseini.
A Zionist convoy travelling from Jaffa was ambushed outside Jerusalem. One
Jewish death was reported, one missing and nine wounded.
The Palestinian village of Dayr Aban [pop. 2 100] was surrounded by force of
at least 100 Zionists. There was no record of casualties resulting from what was
described as a "punitive expedition."
January 18
The town of Salama, near Tel-Aviv, [pop 6 730] was attacked by the 3rd
Battalion of the Alexandroni Brigade (three houses were blown up). The Arab
Liberation Militia sent 20 reinforcements to join the 30 strong village militia.
attack in the Old City of Jerusalem. A car packed with gelignite and rivets,
connected to a timer, tried to enter the city at Jaffa Gate driven by Jewish bus
driver dressed as an Arab and carrying false identity papers. He successfully
passed through the checkpoint but was recognised by an Arab bus driver.
The burnt and dismembered body of a Yemenite Jew, believed to be the
driver was found later at Jaffa Gate.
In Haifa, Arabs demanded the withdrawal of three busloads of Jewish workers
from Consolidated Oil Refineries, thus renewing the stalemate which has
prevented resumption of production for the past three weeks.
Four Stern Gang members, including a girl, were sentenced to life
imprisonment for taking part in illegal military training, carrying and firing the
arms during a raid in October.
It was stated that the four settlements in the Hebron area were in constant
danger due to their isolated position.
As two new contingents of Arab volunteers arrived in Damascus, the first
British civil servants to leave Palestine - architects, engineers etc - readied for
departure.
The Arab Higher Committee refused an invitation to appear before the UN
Palestine Commission. The Committee was "determined to persist in rejection
of partition and in refusal to recognise the United Nations resolution ."
January 20
A combined force of Palestinians and the ALA, estimated at about 500
fighters, attacked the colony of Yehyam in western Galilee. British troops
came to the rescue.
The village of Lubya [pop. 2 350] situated to the west of Tiberias was attacked
by Zionist raiders during the night. One villager was reported dead as a result of
the attack.
At Jehiam, Upper Galilee, a force of 100 Zionists fortified in a crusader castle,
were under siege by an Arab force of about 500. Nine Zionists were killed in
what proved to be a well planned attack on this isolated settlement, before being
relieved by British troops and police.
In Jerusalem, the relative calm of the previous few days, while religious leaders
met to consider the position of Jerusalem, was shattered. The Haganah fired
upon members of the Highland Light Infantry as they evacuated inmates of a
Jewish home for the aged. One soldier was seriously injured, three less so. One
A group of workers from the village of Hamama were attacked by settlers from
Nitzanim settlement. Fifteen workers were wounded.
January 23
By this date, commentators were able to affirm that while the two main Zionist
terrorist groups - the Irgun and Stern Gang - on occasion would conduct their
own operations, in general, together with the official Jewish defence force
Haganah, they were all obeying Jewish Agency orders. It was further observed
that the Haganah had developed into an efficient, strong well-disciplined,
fighting machine which would retaliate viciously and methodically after any
Arab attack.
January 25
Golda Meyerson, in an address to the AGM of the Council of Jewish
Federations and Welfare Funds in Chicago asked for American Jews to supply
up to $30 million immediately.23
British armoured cars interrupted an Arab attack on a convoy outside Jerusalem.
Ten Jews and two Arabs were reported killed.
January 26
An attack by the Haganah destroyed the village of Sukreir in the Gaza district.
Explosions ripped through various empty premises in Jerusalem, including a
booby trapped house in the Jewish quarter where a soldier was injured.
Seven Arabs were reported killed in night attacks near Tel Aviv and Jaffa.
A government directive that all US cargo ships have to be examined was
enacted when the US ship, the Exford, was directed to Haifa for examination of
her cargo.
January 27
An uneasy week long truce in the coastal plane area was broken when Arab
forces attacked a convoy and Zionists attacked two Palestinian police officers
driving children to school.
At midnight, Zionist attackers penetrated the outskirts of the village of
Bayt'Affa [pop.700] north-east of Gaza. An attempt was made to mine some
outlying houses but the attackers were detected by village guards. A two hour
fight ensued before the raiders withdrew to the nearby settlement of Negba.
An American merchant ship was refused leave to enter Tel Aviv harbour and
ordered to Haifa, in conformity with US government instructions to its
However a third was more successful with 40 tons of freight and some arms
being captured.
The UN Palestine Commission unanimously agreed to the formation of a
Jewish militia in Palestine. It was ready to consider a similar arrangement for
the Arabs. Britain told the Commission that she could not allow the formation
of such a militia prior to the termination of the Mandate.
The US Consulate-General warned US citizens that the US government
"strongly disapproves" of any interference or participation by them in foreign
armed forces. Citizens fighting in the armed services of Jews or Arabs would
lose their passports and their right to protection. Naturalised citizens would lose
their American citizenship.
January 30
Shooting took place around the King David Hotel in Jerusalem. Sniping and
sporadic machine gun fire brought traffic to a halt until British armoured cars
moved in. The Haganah blew up a house in the Katamon quarter of the city.
British sappers eventually rescued the Palestinian occupants.
Yazur village, outside Jaffa, was besieged by Zionist forces. One house was
destroyed, with its owner being killed. Arab snipers claimed three Jewish
victims, including a woman, in the Manshieh quarter of the Tel Aviv-Jaffa
boundary.
January 31
The Jewish owned Palestine Post building was devastated by a bomb, with 20
people injured. It was reported that Arab underground forces in the Jerusalem
area claimed responsibility while Jewish Agency sources blamed the British.
The UK government formally complained to Bulgaria over its assistance in
unauthorised Jewish immigration which contravened the laws of Palestine.
The Royal Navy intercepted a schooner carrying 280 unauthorised Central
European Jews destined for Palestine. It was diverted to Cyprus.
Britain amplified its refusal to countenance any militia in Palestine until the
Mandate came to an end. It was stated that the Palestine Commission, itself,
would not be welcome until two weeks before the Mandate was terminated.
Britain would not be responsible for its safety should it arrive earlier. The
administration would not be handed over piecemeal, but in its entirety at the
end of the Mandate. The Arab Legion would be withdrawn and no British
Notes
1 Theodore Herzl, Diaries III, p.77
2 Benny Morris, Falsifying the Record, (Journal of Palestine Studies, Spring 1995) p.51
3 ibid p.53
4 Norman Finkelstein, Myths, Old and New, (JoPS, Autumn 1991) p.78
5 Michael Palumbo, The Palestinian Catastrophe, p.4
6 ibid p.34
7 Harry Sacher, Israel, the establishment of a state, p.217
8 Said Aburish, Children of Bethany, p.95
9 ibid p.105
10 Palumbo, p.36
11 ibid p.40
12 Ilan Pappe, The Making of the Arab-Israeli Conflict 1947-1951, p.50
13 Nathan Krystall, The De-Arabisation of West Jerusalem 1947-50 (JoPS, Winter 1998) p.7
14 Benny Morris, The birth of the Palestinian refugee problem. 1947-1949, p.32
15 Pappe, p.82
16 Morris, p.30
17 Krystall, p.7
18 Walid Khalidi, Before their Diaspora, p.316
19 Walid Khalidi, All that Remains, p.256
20 Morris, p.47
21 The Times 21/1/48
22 The Times 23/1/48
23 Henry Cattan, Palestine, the Arabs and Israel, p.219
24 Krystall, p.9
25 Morris, p.190
February
In view of the Zionist desire to reduce the number
of Arabs in the proposed Jewish state it follows that
orders to expel Arabs......were interpreted liberally
by most Haganah officers.
"The Palestinian Catastrophe" Michael Palumbo
In the initial stages of the conflict the Arab forces were relatively successful.
With little organisation, few modern weapons, with little knowledge of the size
and strength of forces facing them, they performed well in the "battle of the
convoys", disrupting the Zionist supply lines between their population centres
and outlying colonies.
In contrast the Zionists were largely fighting a defensive war. However
organisation was a strength and, latterly, it was turned to their distinct
advantage. This was typified by the Haganah setting up an office in the US,
during February, under the name "Land and Labor" for recruitment of
professional military personnel.1
Ultimately, the Zionist intelligence service had correct assessments of the
disarray, weakness and confusion existing on the Palestinian side and were able
to make a fair estimate of the internal conflicts and feuding between the various
factions. Telephone conversations between local leaders and the Arab Higher
Committee were intercepted. 2
From the beginning of February onwards, observers noted a relative trickle of
Palestinian Arabs leaving their homes to seek safety elsewhere.
On 4 February the British High Commisioner noted that "throughout the
Arab middle class there is a steady exodus of those who can afford to leave the
country."3
Israeli historian, Rony Gabbay, recorded
"According to Jewish sources some 30 000 persons [note: 4% of the eventual
total], members of well-to-do families in Jerusalem and Haifa, together with
the inhabitants of some villages in the Sharon greatly affected by the
disturbances and riots departed for neighbouring Arab countries between
January to March 1948." 3
By the end of the month all Jerusalem's neighbourhoods, with the exception of
the Jewish Quarter in the Arab dominated Old City, were exclusively Arab or
Jewish. There was next to no communication between them.
However when it came to outright expulsion of the population the claim that
only "hostile" Arabs were subject to expulsion was refuted by the observation
and evidence of the U.N. and neutral observers. They reported that in many
cases "considerable brutality" was used to "cleanse" Palestinian villages of their
residents - who offered no resistance. It was up to each commander to decide
which Arabs were "hostile".
In the words of author and researcher, Michael Palumbo,
"In view of the Zionist desire to reduce the number of Arabs in the
proposed Jewish state it follows that orders to expel Arabs......were
interpreted liberally by most Haganah officers." 3
During February, as historians subsequently revealed, Ben Gurion made it
abundantly clear that he was determined to acquire Palestinian owned land and
get rid of the owners. The White Paper of 1939 had almost completely blocked
Jewish land purchases, suffocating any development and blocking any regional
development of Jewish controlled areas. The implication of the partition
resolution was that the proposed Zionist state was allocated some 55% of
Palestine.The vast majority of this was Palestinian owned.
Ben Gurion's answer, when asked about the absence of Jewish owned
land in strategic areas of Palestine, made it quite clear that the Zionists intended
outright war. And this war would entail the dispossession and expulsion of the
Palestinian people.
"The war will give us the land, the concepts of 'ours' and 'not ours' are
only concepts for peacetime, and during the war they lose all meaning."
And later, when advising to forget "conventional notions" of acquiring land
"......In the Negev we will not buy land. We will conquer it. You are
forgetting that we are at war."4
That Ben Gurion knew what was happening, desired what was happening and
encouraged what was happening throughout Palestine, was made evident by
instructions to the new Officer-in-Command of the Haganah in Jerusalem,
David Shaltiel. On 5 February Ben Gurion instructed Shaltiel to conquer Arab
districts and to settle Jews in the abandoned and conquered districts.
In this period a number of Palestinian Arab villages in the Coastal Plain
(the Sharon) were emptied of their inhabitants. These Palestinian communities
were isolated and close to Zionist communities. This was the area between Tel
Aviv and Hadera where Jews were in the majority and, according to the
partition resolution, was to be the core of the Jewish State. The desertion of the
area by its Palestinian residents was mainly through fear. They had witnessed or
heard of the activities of the Haganah, the Irgun and the Stern Gang.
February was the month that the UN Palestine Commission reported to the
Security Council of the impossibility of its task without the backing from some
international force to shore up its authority. The five members, dubbed "The
Five Lonely Pilgrims" by the Commission's chairman, Czech born Karel
Liscicky, unknown and undistinguished in international circles, were to oversee
the birth of the UN's creation.
Liscicky, on the basis of his UNESCO experience, was the only member
to have first hand experience of Palestine. He was the only one who had studied
the problem of partition in any detail. It was reported that he was embarrased to
be considered an expert by the other members of the Commission whose
knowledge, initially, of Palestine was considered abysmal.
Whereas Liscicky had cut his teeth during the declining years of the
League of Nations, the fore-runner of the United Nations, the vice-chairman,
Raul de Medina was a young diplomat more at home in the "more leisurely
merry-go-round of diplomacy in Washington" than his own country, Bolivia.
The remaining three members were not diplomats. The Danish member
was Per Federspiel, regarded as having a "liberal" political outlook with British
sympathies. The only non-English speaking member was, paradoxically, of
Welsh descent. Named Morgan, he was a Panamanian former Minister of
Education who was critical of Britain. Finally there was Senator Francisco of
the Philippines. A lawyer, Francisco was regarded as being more used to dealing
with meticulous, well checked over memoranda and resolutions instead of the
fluctuating and frightening task into which all five members had been thrust.5
February 1
At the village of Al Kabri [pop 5 360] north of Acre a Zionist group attempted
to blow up the house of the village leader, an ally of the Mufti. This action
resulted in the villagers blocking Jewish traffic en route to the Lebanon.
Palestinian forces planted a bomb at the offices of the Palestine Post in
Jerusalem. The lorry bomb, parked in the heart of "Jewish" Jerusalem, virtually
demolished the building while most of the editorial staff were taking a break in
a nearby cafe. One report stated that 20 Jewish civilians were killed, others
spoke of about 20 being injured but with no deaths reported officially.
With windows being shattered within a radius of half a mile, it was
reported to be Palestine's biggest blast since the Zionists blew up the King
David Hotel in July 1946, killing 91 people.
A British cruiser intercepted a schooner with its cargo of illegal Jewish
immigrants. They were to be transhipped from Haifa to internment camps in
Cyprus.
At the Security Council, on the eve of the Palestine Commission's request for an
International Police Force to help implement the partition resolution, a new
"crescendo of Jewish pressure" was reported. Three targets were in the Zionists'
sights. British firmness in not relinquishing any power before 15 May. British
determination not to free any port to assist Jewish immigration before the same
date nor to declare to any party their evacuation plans. Britain was accused of a
plot to sabotage and destroy the embryonic "Jewish State".
February 2
The Palestine Commission stated that their task was not practicable if Britain
was only prepared to allow them to operate in Palestine two weeks before the
end of the Mandate. A collapse of security and administrative services was
predicted. The Palestine Government, in response, pointed out that since the
partition resolution had been passed in the General Assembly, the situation had
deteriorated. It was pointed out that the arrival of members of the Commission
would probably provoke the Palestinians into further violence, since they were
violently opposed to the partition of their land.
Britain's chief permanent delegate at the U.N., Sir Alexander Cadogan,
stated
"The Jewish story that the Arabs were attackers and the Jews the attacked is
not in present circumstances tenable. The Arabs are determined to show that
they will not submit tamely to the United Nations plan of partition, while the
Jews are trying to consolidate the advantages gained at the General Assembly
by a succession of drastic operations designed to intimidate and cure the Arabs
of any desire for further conflict." 6
Within the United States it was reported that the government was increasingly
wary of being involved in the conflict in Palestine. For domestic reasons - keep
Palestine out of domestic politics. For international reasons - the U.S., as a
supporter of partition, must be see to be as bipartisan as possible. Neutrality
was also seen to be important in view of the concern over oil supplies from the
Middle East.
February 3
The 'Arab an Nuseirat Bedouin fled their Zionist dominated area, to the north of
Tel - Aviv, after an attack by the Haganah.
Two Arab prisoners escaped from Jerusalem central prison in the confusion
following an attack by Arab raiders who bombed and raked the building with
February 5
Twelve Arabs were killed and 21 wounded following a battle with the police
and soldiers. The Arab irregulars had attacked a Jewish truck near Haifa.
February 6
Al Manshiyya [pop. 810] situated 2km to the east of Acre was attacked by a
number of Zionists armed with automatic weapons. They were repulsed by the
village defenders. There was no mention of casualties.
Mansurat al Khayt [pop. 200] came under attack from a group of 50 Zionists.
Supported by cover fire from automatic weapons they succeeded in blowing up
one house. One villager was reported wounded. [At the end of the war the
village was in the demilitarised zone; by 1956 all the villagers had been
expelled.]
An attack by a contingent of ALA forces on the colonial settlement of Ein
Zeitim was broken up by British troops.
The Arab Higher Committee sent the UN a formal declaration of war in "selfdefence"against "any force going to Palestine to partition the country". The
document made clear that the UN decision to partition the country was "null
and void" because of "pressure put by the US delegation and Government on
certain nations." Siam (Thailand), Haiti, the Philipinnes, Liberia, Cuba and
Colombia were included amongst those pressurised to vote for the resolution.7
The Committee refused to acknowledge the moral authority of the
partition resolution for which votes were recruited by "nothing short of political
blackmail." It reminded the Secretary-Genral that the Assembly refused to test
the legality of the proceedings in the International Court of Justice. 8
February 7
British troops demolished two buildings in the village of Dayr Ayyub (in which
lay, according to tradition, the tomb of the prophet Ayyub or Job). The buildings
were allegedly the vantage point used to fire upon Zionist convoys passing
through the village.
At a meeting of Mapai leaders, Ben Gurion summarised the situation
"From your entry into Jerusalem through Lifta-Romena, through Mahane
Yehuda, King George Street and Mea Shearim there are no strangers [i.e.
Arabs]. One hundred per cent Jews. Since Jerusalem's destruction in the days
of the Romans - it hasn't been so Jewish as it is now. In many Arab districts in
the west one sees not one Arab. I do not assume that this will change.
He added
"what had happened in Jerusalem . . . could well happen in great parts of the
country - if we hold on . ." 9
At the same meeting the purchase of Arab land was discussed and dismissed by
Ben Gurion.
February 8
Estimates of 15 000 uniformed and equipped Syrian trained troops from two
Arab states were published. With between 300 - 500 fighters arriving weekly
the appearance was that of troops, some more ready for offensive action rather
than defensive action. The former took the form of Syrian trained forces in
American styled uniforms. The latter, untrained local militia, usually with no
uniform and armed with a wide array of weapons. Ammunition was on sale in
tobacco shops in Arab towns, rifles, pistols and grenades could be bought in the
bazaars.
Secret "bomb schools" were reported to be operating throughout Palestine
operated by "outside volunteer" explosive experts.
British paratroopers came under heavy fire when they broke up a battle between
the warring parties in Haifa. In retaliatory fire, three of the Arab forces were
reported killed.
In Tel Aviv, an armed Zionist gang held up a British owned store. The loot was
driven away on a stolen lorry.
Ben Gurion amplified his plans for any land captured in the Negev. It would be
sold to the Jewish National Fund. Such a strategy would be a source of millions
of pounds. When it was pointed out that they were no longer in the Middle Ages
and that armies do not steal land, that after the war the Bedouin will return to
their land, the reply was to forget "conventional notions."10
February 9
British forces blew up a house in Tel Aviv, considering it to be the source of
gunfire aimed at a nearby police station. The demolition damaged an adjoining
synagogue which, on examination, proved to have reinforced walls. Further
examination revealed ladders giving access to windows with strategic views of
the surrounding area, four sten guns with magazines and grenades were found.
A Jewish freelance photographer was shot in the arm when four Zionist gunmen
entered his shop in Tel Aviv.
Zionist forces blew up a Palestinian owned building in the new commercial
centre of Jerusalem. One Jewish death and two serious injuries resulted from
the ambush of an armoured bus near Lake Huleh.
Villagers from Arab Caesarea began to evacuate their homes out of fear of
Zionist actions.
The UN Palestine Commission appealed to Britain to allow it to take
preliminary steps in the establishment of local Arab and Jewish militia
February 10
British troops, in their first act of deployment as infantrymen since the partition
resolution was adopted in November, took action to prevent fighting between
Zionist and Arab forces in the Jewish Montefiore section of Jerusalem.
The six hour battle started when police responded to sniper fire. It
intensified as both Haganah and Arab positions on the rooftops and the Old City
walls opened fire. In the Jewish quarter of Yemin Moshe, mortar barrages from
the British brought the fighting to a halt. The deaths of six Arabs and one Jew
was reported. Two British soldiers were wounded, with one dying later.
South of Haifa, Zionist terrorist forces killed seven Palestinian Arabs with five
wounded. It happened when a party of 12 Palestinians were returning to the
village of Tireh, near Tulkarm.
According to The Scotsman
"...they were taken from their lorry by a party of Jews and marched into an
orange grove near an RAF camp in Central Palestine."
"The Arabs were forced to march into orange groves alongside the road and
mowed down by gunfire."
In Haifa itself, one Jew was killed in Khamra Square, with both Jews and Arabs
wounded.
Arab sources reported the action of a convoy approaching the village of al
Maghar and firing upon the residents. No casualty figures were given.
The Jewish Agency lodged objections to 35 of the 45 articles of the draft statute
for the projected international city of Jerusalem. The articles were to be
presented to the Trusteeship Council for approval.
The first monthly progress report from the Palestine Commission to the
Security Council complained of an Arab 'attempt to alter by force' the UN
partition plan. The Security Council agreed to examine the need for armed
forces or an international police force.
The British government warned the Palestine Commission that the food
position in Palestine was "very serious."
February 11
The 'Arab Shudki Bedouin fled their Zionist dominated neighbourhood in the
Coastal Plains after the Irgun attacked their encampment.
The Yerushalayim ha-Nezurah carrying 679 illegal immigrants was intercepted
off the coast of Palestine.
Altogether 25 incidents were reported throughout Palestine.
February 12
Zionist forces launched attacks on the villages of Yazur [pop. 4 030] near
Jaffa and Abu Kabir, a suburb of Jaffa. Using machine guns and mortars the
attack lasted from midnight until dawn, with five people wounded and seven
houses destroyed.
British troops skirmished with a 'superior' Arab force, possibly the ALA,
near the village of al Mansura, north of Safad. One British soldier was
killed with no report of Arab casualties.
An Arab bus en route from al Hula to Safad was ambushed by Zionist
forces. A mine was detonated under the bus. This, together with simultaneous
gunfire and firebombs, killed five passengers with five wounded.
Haifa was the scene of a variety of incidents. A Palestinian Arab was shot dead
by assailants in the eastern part of the city; the body of a Jewish resident of Tel
Amal was found on the outskirts of the city. A Jewish bus was attacked with six
wounded and at Carmel railway station shots were fired which killed two Arabs
and wounded four.
Forty miles to the south of Haifa, electricty repair men, together with a
military/police escort, came under fire as they were repairing a cable. One
Jewish worker was shot dead, another seriously wounded.
Following the shooting of a Jewish woman in Talbiyeh, a Haganah loudspeaker
van toured the area ordering the remaining Palestinian residents to leave or else
'they and their property would be blown up.' Despite the van and its occupants
being arrested, a British report commented that 'the Arabs did evacuate.' 11
Irish Guards clashed with a force of 50 Syrian Arabs in northern Palestine. The
day long clash resulted in the death of two British soldiers.
February 13
The Jewish Agency accused British troops with being accessories to the killing
of four Jewish guards in Jerusalem. The four had been arrested for carrying
arms and had later been found dead, with bullet wounds, outside St Stephen's
Gate in the Arab quarter of the city. A British Army sergeant-major was placed
under arrest.
However the Arab Higher Committee sources denied that the British army
had anything to do with the deaths. It was claimed that the four Zionists,
dressed as Arabs and found to be heavily armed, had been stopped in a lane
leading to the HQ of the Muslim Brotherhood in the Old City.
This was followed by a Haganah order that Jews should refuse to
submit to being arrested or searched by British security forces unless in the
presence of Jewish police.
In Haifa, a British sergeant was shot dead by Arab assailants. A British corporal
investigating the death was wounded by gunmen.
The day's total deaths included 13 Jews, 12 Arabs and two Britons.
February 14
Ben Gurion issued orders to the Haganah commander in Jerusalem for the
conquest of the whole city and its suburbs.
A Zionist convoy exchanged fire with villagers as it passed through Burayr,
near Gaza. The next day a contingent of British troops forcibly removed a
barrier at the entrance to the village. This resulted in two villagers being
wounded.
February 15
An ALA uniformed unit attacked the colonial settlements of Tirat Zvi and two
others in the Jordan Valley. The Arab forces, who had been training in the area,
attacked with three inch mortars. The Haganah were apparently waiting for
them and repulsed them after a five hour battle. British units units eventually
arrived to disperse the attackers.
At least 35 Arabs and one Jew were reported killed.
Two bridges were blown up over tributaries of the River Jordan on the SyrianPalestine border. Initial reports indicated that Arab forces were responsible with
a possible onslaught on Zionist settlements in the northern "finger" of Palestine
in the offing. However, Zionist forces were more likely to be responsible for
attempts to blow up three bridges in northern Palestine, since this hindered
movement into Palestine.
Under cover of automatic fire, Zionist forces planted two bombs beside the
home of Haj Amin al Husseini, Mufti of Jerusalem. One room was demolished.
Also in the city, an Arab passerby and his donkey were shot dead as he passed a
Jewish quarter.
A Palmach force from the 3rd battalion raided the village of Sa'Sa' in northern
Galilee with orders "to blow up 20 houses and kill the largest number of
fighters". In the event the forces, under the command of Moshe Kelman,
planted bombs during a night raid and succeeded in perpetrating a massacre of
six adult villagers and five small children.
Three houses were destroyed and 11 badly damaged.12
In Gaza, two British NCOs were fired upon and wounded.A gang of armed
Zionists, dressed in British Army uniforms, raided a military camp between
Haifa and Tel Aviv and stole a large quantity of army rations. Four British
soldiers were wounded in Haifa when gun fire was exchanged between an Arab
Legion sentry and a Jewish bus.
Jewish sources reported that the abandoned Jewish Maccabi quarter in no-mans
land between Jaffa and Tel Aviv had been set on fire by Arab attackers.
The Stern Gang warned members of foreign consulates in Jerusalem, by letter,
that they would be treated as "foes and spies" if they, in the eyes of the
terrorists, were deemed to have exploited diplomatic immunity to help the
Palestinians. Unnamed members of the Consular Corps from Syria, the
Lebanon, Iraq, Egypt, the Yemen and Saudi Arabia were accused of abusing
their diplomatic immunity.
The Gang also threatened the rulers of those Middle Eastern countries
where anti-Zionist demonstrations had taken place. Snipers were accused of
using mosques as vantage points They were now to be regarded as legitimate
targets for the terrorists.
The Bedouin tribes 'Arab ar Rumeilat and 'Arab Hawitat evacuated their
encampments in the Coastal plain.
The village of Arab Caesarea was captured with most of the remaining villagers
fleeing or being expelled13.
The secretary-general of the Arab League stated that regular armies of the Arab
states had no intention of intervening in the Palestinian struggle. They regarded
the situation as a civil war where the Zionists were attempting to seize part of
Palestine. Regular Arab armies would intervene, he said, only if foreign armies
invaded the country and tried to enforce partition.
February 16
Arab Legion troops clashed with Zionist forces in Haifa resulting in the death
of three Jewish passengers of a car following a Jewish armoured bus. Haifa
police reported that the armoured bus first fired on the troops, killing one of
their number.
In an 8 hour clash in northern Palestine, at three settlements, the death of 60
Arab fighters (newspaper sources reported 18 dead) was claimed by a Haganah
spokesman. It was reported that a force of 400 uniformed Arabs armed with
three inch mortars had attacked the settlements in the Galilean hills.
Two Palestinians were shot dead. One near St John's hospital in Jerusalem, the
other in eastern Haifa.
The British Government stated that food supplies would be adequate until the
end of the mandate, but not beyond.
The UN Palestine Commission called for 'prompt action' by the Security
Council on the problem of 'providing that armed assistance which alone would
enable the Commission to discharge its responsibilities' by keeping Jew and
Arab apart when Britain renounces the Mandate. It was argued that unless steps
were taken, British withdrawal from Palestine would initiate 'a period of
uncontrolled, widespread strife and bloodshed'.
The Commission felt that it could not maintain law and order, implement
partition without an adequate military force at its disposal. The absence of such
a force would make it impossible to establish boundaries "Certain elements of
the Jewish community continue 'to commit irresponsible acts of violence which
worsen the security situation.' "
The Commission was of the opinion that a 'Jewish militia' was essential
for implementing partition but should not be used for actions outwith the border
of the proposed Jewish state or used for retaliatory actions.
Particular concern was expressed over the future of Jerusalem , conceived as a
demilitarised enclave within the proposed Arab state. It was observed that
"The United Nations would be dealt a severe blow if its efforts to to maintain
the sacred character of the city and preserve it as a possible centre of peace
and harmony should end in a sanguinary struggle."
"This would be a catastrophic conclusion to the era of international concern
for that territory."14
The first public evidence of American anxiety was revealed when President
Truman sent a letter to the Kings of Iraq and Saudi Arabia urging them not to
use violence in resisting the partition of Palestine.
In counselling the U.S. to adopt "as a member of the United Nations a really
neutral attitude towards Arabs and towards implementation of Palestine
partition" the Iraqi Minister for Education, Mohamed Alshabibi pointed out
"Many responsible American leaders give direct and strong support to the
Zionist cause. They even insist on implementation of partition by force of
American troops. Such an attitude cannot but create the reaction in Arab
countries."14
February 17
The Irgun carried out an attack on Fajja [pop. 1 750] near Jaffa. Some of the
villagers fled as a result of the attack, the start of a process of terrorising the
villagers by both the Irgun and the Haganah.
On the day that the Security Council began work on the Palestine Commission's
proposals , The Times printed a revealing article on how the partition resolution
on Palestine was being viewed three months on:
The commission's report appeared to leave open two possibilities to the
Council. One was to produce an international army and push the partition
scheme through . . . The other to refer the plan back to the General Assembly in
special session for revision on the ground that it could not be executed because
of Arab opposition . Neither, it was feared, could be effective before 16 May,
when, as the commission expected, "complete chaos will descend upon
Palestine."
Washington was seen to have given out little that did not beg the question.
The United Nations policy for Palestine had been, and would continue to be,
largely of the United States making, "which points to a continuing indecision."
"By and large, few observers have any doubt now that the Assembly made a
grave mistake in conceding a Jewish claim bound to provoke strong Arab
resistance . . ."
And commenting on the logical extension of the partition resolution, that UN
member states should now consider giving physical backing to partition:
"But, recalling the hesitations of many members who voted for the partition
scheme, one may assume the widespread feeling in their ranks, that they would
prefer to be more certain of the justice of the particular United Nations cause
which is being resisted."
February 18
The Haganah called up men and women aged 25 to 35 for military service.
Six Palestinian Arabs were killed and 32 wounded following a terrorist
explosion in Ramleh Market place. In Haifa, two Arabs were shot dead and one
seriously wounded. An Armenian resident was shot dead while
standing on a hotel balcony. One Jew was shot but not seriously injured.
Mr Creech Jones, Secretary of State for the Colonies, reminded the Palestine
Commission that at the time of the passing of the partition resolution, the
General Assembly had been informed by Britain that there was no use in the
resolution being passed unless the means of implementation and, if necessary,
enforcement were provided.
The Arab Higher Committee posed the question of why Palestine should
be selected for enforcement of UN recommendations when the United Nations
was being defied by both Korea and the Balkans.
February 19
In Baysan district, a battle took place around the settlement of Tirat Tzvi. At the
same time Zionist forces attempted to encircle the nearby village of Farwana.
They only managed to blow up three empty houses.
A Haganah convoy was ambushed near Manara in Tiberius district, resulting in
the death of three members of the convoy. British troops eventually rescued the
convoy.
It was reported that a British convoy stopped in the village of Beit Daja to arrest
a man carrying a rifle. The villagers opened fire on the soldiers. In the ensuing
battle two villagers were killed and three wounded. One soldier was killed
when "he jumped from his truck with a Bren machine-gun in his arms and ran
into the village with his gun blazing."
In Jerusalem a British soldier was shot dead and another wounded when shot
from behind while window shopping in Jerusalem.Their weapons were stolen.
The Irgun claimed responsibility "in reprisal for the destruction of Jewish
property in Jerusalem by the British."15 Further British casualties were
reported.
A British policeman was shot and seriously wounded in the Jewish quarter of
Jerusalem. A Jewish girl was killed near Tel Aviv.
In Haifa, the head of the Muslim community, Sheikh Mohammed Nimr al
Khatib, was shot and seriously wounded by four assailants, believed to be
Zionists. In Lower Haifa a Jewish bus was fired upon. Four Jewish passengers
were killed and a British policeman injured when Zionist and Arab gunmen
raced through the the streets blazing away with Tommy guns at passing
traffic.The body of a blindfolded Jewish victim of the violence was found in
Haifa with bullet wounds to head and chest.
The Royal Navy intercepted a refugee ship with 700 illegal immigrants off the
Palestine coast.
Britain warned the Palestine Commission against creating a Jewish only militia,
warning of Arab reaction. It was stressed that Britain was not prepared to
negotiate with any "shadow government" the Commission may intend to set up
before the end of the mandate.
The United States denied allegations, commonly voiced by many Arab states,
that she had exerted extreme pressure on delegations and Governments to vote
for the partition resolution.
February 20
Using tanks and armoured vehicles a Zionist force attacked the village of Yazur
[pop. 4,030] to the west of Jaffa which had previously been pounded by mortar
fire. An ice factory and two houses were demolished. One villager was killed
with four wounded.
Clashes took place between Arab irregulars fighting on behalf of the
Palestinians and the Haganah. A Jewish convoy was attacked near the village of
Menara resulting in three Jewish deaths
A two masted schooner docked at Haifa, with 705 illegal immigrants, for
transfer to Cyprus. The Independence arrived in Tel Aviv carrying 280 illegal
immigrants, volunteers under oath to the Haganah. In Tel Aviv 10 terrorists
from the Stern Gang robbed the Palestine Government Veterinary Department,
escaping with equipment which they said would be turned "over to the Jewish
State when the British withdrew".
The Haganah subjected the Arab central area of Haifa to battleground
conditions with mortar bombardments, killing six and wounding 36 Palestinian
civilians. It was both started by and followed by heavy street fighting. Initially
vicious street fighting then sniping and hit-and-run firing from speeding cars
with windows being smashed and groups of Palestinian residents being
terrorised and forced to flee for cover - accompanied by mortar shells crashing
through roofs and exploding inside homes.
Heavy firing preceded the arrival of British police and paratroopers who
engaged both sides with Bren gun fire in order to silence groups of snipers on
the roofs and behind windows.
Other population centres were targets for the mortar shells. Including the
Eastern Railway Station, the city's market place and the police station. In
general Haifa, Palestine's principal port and oil town - with the Jewish area
strategically overlooking the low lying Arab areas round the harbour, railways
and oil refineries - was the country's chief trouble spot with scores of dead and
wounded from street fighting.
In Jerusalem, 12 Zionist terrorists escaped from Central Prison. Among those
who escaped through a tunnel were leaders of the terrorist Irgun and Stern
Gang, including the former deputy of the late Abraham Stern, founder of the
Gang, who had eight years to serve of a 15 year sentence.
Arab snipers in Jaffa and Jerusalem killed two Jews. A further three were killed
when a convoy was attacked near Safad. In Safad itself, sporadic firing resulted
in the death of one Arab. A British soldier was killed by an Arab land mine near
Beit Dajan.
The remaining 20 villagers of Arab Caesarea were expelled from their villages
after it was surrounded by a Palmach unit and their houses destroyed. This
action had been preceded by a Haganah General Staff decision to destroy the
houses, which were mostly Jewish property. Thirty houses were eventually
blown up, six were left intact due to the shortage of explosives.
Yet it is worth noting the Palestinians of Caesarea had
done all in their power to keep the peace in their village and around it... The
villagers supplied agricultural produce to the Jewish market in Haifa and
Hadera.
Caesarea was the first pre-planned, organised expulsion of an Arab community
by the Haganah in 1948.13
The Scotsman's special correspondent reported that
"Again there have been clear indications that the Arabs do not wish or intend
this 'struggle' to begin before the British leave."
In observing that many Palestinians are business people she commented on
some of the problems that would face them
"The business life of the Arab community is practically at a standstill. People
are not buying anything but daily necessities. . . What is going to happen to the
Palestine pound when the mandate ends ? As the Arabs refuse to recognise
also killed. Jerusalem residents were advised, officially, not to go to the Jewish
shopping area.
Three Arabs were killed by mortar bombs in the Arab quarter of Northern
Jerusalem
Mehahem Beigin [Author's note: the same Menachem Begin who became a
prime minister of Israel] "commander in chief" of the Irgun called for reprisals
against the British. He appealed to world Jewry - especially US Zionists - to
declare economic war on Britain.
The Jewish Agency sent a demand to the Palestine Government and British
militia HQ for immediate withdrawal of British troops and British police from
"Jewish areas" of Jerusalem unless accompanied on security duties by Jewish
police.
Thirty Irgun terrorists, disguised as British soldiers, occupied Barclay's Bank in
Tel Aviv. They drove up in lorries, stopped traffic and surrounded the premises
with barbed wire. However keys could not be found so the the robbery was only
partial successful.
Fighting in the Beisan area stopped when 80 British armoured cars drove in
between the Arab lines and the concentration of 1 200 Haganah fighters.
Excluding the casualties arising from the morning atrocity in Ben Yehuda
Street, it was officially calculated that 42 people had been killed during the day
with 96 injured. Both figures were the highest since "partition disturbances"
began three months previously.
The Times reported on the strength of the Zionist lobby within US politics, a
comment which would not be out of place as we begin the 21st century.
Referring to a political victory in the Bronx by Senator Taft, achieved with the
support of the Jewish vote, it observed the Zionists, were becoming daily more
arrogant in their pressure on American policy. They were no longer content to
accept words. They wanted action, and with Senator Taft appearing to promise
it "President Truman can offer no less, if he is to have any hope of keeping their
votes."
February 23
Following the devastation in Ben Yehuda Street, reprisals against the British
continued. In response to the Palestine Government's statement that it was not
prepared to surrender any part of the responsibility for law and order, Zionists
laid electrically detonated mines across the approach roads to Jerusalem. Four
vehicles were blown up, causing injuries, but no fatalities.
could be heard in Jerusalem. The British army used two pounder shells to
silence Zionist snipers, the first time that guns of this calibre had been used in
the city.
Armed Irgun robbers held up employees of the Public Works Department.
They escaped with with heavy building equipment and several lorries. At the
same time, members of the Stern Gang robbed the Jerusalem municipality
offices in the Jewish Mahameh Yehuda quarter.
Outside Jaffa, a British patrol was alleged to have disarmed a Haganah unit
based in a factory, thus leaving them to the mercy of nearby Arab forces. The
bodies of ten Zionists were later found. Reports indicated that Zionist sources
believed that the act of disarming was in retaliation for the train atrocity. British
police and army spokesmen insisted that their arms had not been taken away.
The illegal immigrants, 982 in number, from the Haganah ship, Builders and
Fighters, docked at Haifa. They were transferred to a Royal Navy ship for
transport to Cyprus.
Notes
1 Walid Khalidi, Before their Diaspora, p.316
2 Ilan Pappe, The making of the Arab-Israeli Conflict 1947-1951, p.82
3 Michael Palumbo, The Palestinian Catastrophe, p.41
4 Norman Finkelstein, Myths, Old and New,(Journal of Palestine Studies, Autumn 1991) p.76
5 The Scotsman 9/2/48
6 The Times 3/2/48
7 Henry Cattan, Palestine, the Arabs and Israel, p.221
8 The Times 6/2/48
9 Finkelstein, p.76
10 Benny Morris, The birth of the Palestinian Refugee Problem, 1947-1949 p.170
11 ibid p.52
12 Walid Khalidi, All that Remains, p.496
13 Morris, p.54
14 The Scotsman 17/2/48
15 The Scotsman 20/2/48
16 The Scotsman 24/2/48
17 The Times 24/2/48
March
Outwardly, he continued until very late in the day to pay
requisite lip service to the grand humanist-socialist ideals . .
. . on the ground, however, he made sure that what he wanted
got done, and he carefully avoided leaving tracks; his name
rarely adorns an actual expulsion directive.
Benny Morris commenting on David Ben Gurion
Initially, any debate on the catastrophe which befell the Palestinian people and
the refusal of the Israelis to allow refugees to return was plagued by Zionist
mythology and propaganda. There was the much discredited, but much
trumpeted, claim that Palestine was "a land without people for a people without
land." Similarly discredited, but still to be heard from certain Zionist supporters,
was the claim that Palestinian leaders urged their people to flee, that radio
broadcasts urged likewise.
Why, even if these claims were to be true, this should then entitle Israel to
refuse the Palestinian refugees the right to return to their homes, and totally
ignore subsequent UN resolutions taking the same position, has yet to be
explained to the satisfaction of the international community.
Subsequent debate has focused on whether the Palestinian people fled of their
own accord and hence, according to Zionist logic, forfeited the right - forever to return to their land and their homes. Zionism has always blamed those who
were invaded and ignored, quite conveniently, those who carried out the
invasion and eventual occupation.
Or were they expelled as part of a deliberate policy? It is only in the past
decade or so that historians and researchers have tried to find an answer to this
question.
As some historians and biographers of David Ben Gurion, Israel's first prime
minister and leader of the Yishuv (Israel's pre-state "government" under the
Jewish Agency) openly concede (or at least point out, even if some are not
comfortable with the obvious conclusion), most of Ben Gurion's spoken or
written intentions were made with one eye to the future.
In the sense that he was aware that history was in the making. That diaries,
letters would one day be published. That transcripts, minutes of meetings would
be scrutinised by tomorrow's historians and biographers.
Little that he wrote indicated his intention that the Palestinian people
should be forcibly removed from their land. You have to go back some ten years
earlier, to 1937, to find this sentiment expressed in a letter to his son. When
asked what should happen to Palestinian villagers, evicted from their villages,
more often than not his reply was indicated by a shrug of the shoulders or wave
of the hand - as in the case of the callous, inhumane expulsions from LyddaRamleh area.1 After a while the army commanders no longer found the need to
consult on this issue.
Israeli historian, Benny Morris, observed when commenting on Ben Gurion
"Outwardly, he continued until very late in the day to pay requisite lip service
to the grand humanist-socialist ideals . . . . on the ground, however, he made
sure that what he wanted got done, and he carefully avoided leaving tracks; his
name rarely adorns an actual expulsion directive."2
However the reality of Zionist preparations for the creation of a "Jewish" state
was that as early as February 1945, even before the end of World WarII, a series
of military master plans had been drawn up by the Haganah (which was under
control of the Jewish Agency) in anticipation of open warfare leading to a state.
Plans A, B and C followed. The last of these, adopted in May 1946, called
for retaliation or countermeasures, not always aimed at the perpetrators of a
particular action, but at those deemed to have assisted in any way. In other
words, collective punishment and destruction. It was planned that that such
measures should be as immediate as possible, affecting large areas. All means
should be used - leaflets, loud speaker vans, radio broadcasts - to ensure that the
victims knew why they had been chosen. It was regarded as essential to retaliate
in such a way as to undermine Palestinian sense of security.3
By December 1947 the Haganah National Command was pushing for the
adoption of an "aggressive defence strategy" - Plan Dalet or Plan D. This was
adopted on 10 March although it had been envisaged as far back as 1944.4
Prior to the implementation of Plan D the Haganah set up the "Committee for
Abandoned Arab Property". It was composed of Haganah intelligence officers
and Jewish National Fund land purchasing agents and was entrusted with the
disposal of all Arab possessions that fell into Zionist hands. Its creation at such
an early stage raises the issue of Zionist intentions in the coming months.
Effectively this was a first coat of legal gloss on eventual Israeli looting of
Palestinian homes, businesses and property. A situation which continues to this
day and, after 50 years, remains to be addressed by the international
community.
By the beginning of March, despite explosions of mines in built up Arab areas
and "repeated and merciless raids against sleeping Arab villages"5, carried out
in conformity with Plan C, only about 10 out of an eventual 500 or so villages
had been taken by Zionist forces. A relatively insignificant number of
Palestinians had left their homes.
By mid-March Zionism was in crisis. Even the US government had, to all
And there were the armaments to help bring the plan to fruition.
By March 1948 the local Zionist factories in Palestine were producing 100 submachine guns per day (increased to 200 per day in the first week in April), 400
000 rounds of 0.9mm ammunition per month. Production of 150 000 Mills
grenades and 30 000 shells of 3inch mortars per month was reported. The
factories also produced a favourite weapon of the Zionist fighter, flame
throwers. There were anti-tank guns and the Little David or Davidka, a heavy
mortar which was the Zionist weapon par excellence.
Zionist historians have described the Davidka in relatively benign terms as a
device which "tossed a lump of explosive for some 300 yards." The reality was
that it propelled a shell containing 60lbs of TNT usually into built up population
centres where the blast not only killed and maimed but the noise terrorised men,
the Jewish Agency's policy of condoning terrorism. The most strongly worded
denunciation of the Jewish community to date.12
No retaliatory action was threatened but :
"The Government, mindful of the duties of the security forces to maintain law
and order and confronted with the deliberate policy of the Jewish Agency to
render their task as difficult as possible, desires now to bring once more to the
serious attention of the Yishuv the fact that the continuance of indiscriminate
murder and of condoned terrorism can lead only to forfeiture by the community
of all rights in the eyes of the world to be numbered among the civilised
peoples."
It was pointed out that during the previous year the government had "invited the
Agency and Vaad Leumi to call upon the Jewish community to help to find and
arrest terrorists as part of the ordinary legal moral duty of the citizens and
institutions of any civilised State. This invitation was declined by the Agency
on the grounds that it was contrary to Jewish political interests. Since then the
outrages had increased in number and barbarity . . ."13
The statement listed the crimes of which members of the "Jewish
community" were guilty:
"The hanging of the two sergeants; the numerous occasions when innocent
members of the security forces have been treacherously 'shot from behind', the
deliberate demolition of buildings with the certain consequence of death and
injury to women and children; the planned killing of certain foreign nationals;
the intentional shooting of British personnel in hospital; armed robberies and
extortion; and, finally, the Rehovoth outrage."
The statement then proceeded to castigate the leaders of the Jewish community
for failing to take any steps against those responsible for "political reasons", for
the "calculated innuendoes, falsehoods, and propaganda directed against the
British members of the security forces who are in fact every day protecting
Jewish property and saving hundreds of Jewish lives even at risk of their own."
The Jewish Agency's declaration that it was all for law and order had to be
stood against the facts "for many years this international body has been
breaking the laws of Palestine and other countries in which it has operated."
The Jewish Agency, the statement continued, refused to put forward any Jewish
witnesses to give evidence in the various bombings which had taken place.
Last November the Government had withdrawn its forces from the Tel
Aviv area on the understanding that the Agency would establish a civil guard to
deal with terrorist incidents in the area. This had never happened and
"terrorists openly and freely continue to murder and rob the Jews themselves."
On the Sharon Plain where there was a strong presence of Zionist colonies in
the midst of a few Palestinian villages, whose residents had slowly abandoned
or had been forced out of their homes, Arab forces withdrew after mortar
attacks on a number of the colonies.
And, once again, the terrorist activities of the Stern Gang were at the forefront.
This time in Haifa where they claimed responsibility for an army truck
detonated in front of the Salem building. Eighteen Palestinian Arab deaths were
reported with at least 40 others seriously wounded. Among the dead were two
Palestine police constables and five women.The 400lb lorry bomb demolished a
seven storey block of shops and flats when the Zionists, dressed as British
soldiers, parked the lorry in front of the building. Until two days previously, the
building had been used a military observation post, although Zionist sources
alleged that it had been the regional HQ of Arab "terrorist" activities under the
direction of Syrian and Iraqi officers and contained an ammunition dump.
Subsequent shooting resulted in the death of two Jews, one a five year old
girl.
Six Arabs who were captured by the British while attacking a convoy in
February appeared in court charged with carrying and discharging firearms. The
six Syrians were given the option of a fine or imprisonment on both charges.
A Haganah radio broadcast laid the blame for the Ben Yehuda Street explosion
on the British League of ex-Servicemen, which had issued a written statement
claiming responsibility. The League was one of the British fascist groups which
joined Sir Oswald Mosely's Union Party at the beginning of the year.
L. Stein, president of the Anglo-Jewish Association, referred to the "heavy
burden of guilt" that lay on the shoulders of the "murder gangs" and those who,
although they may condemn terrorism, did nothing effective towards stamping
it out. The measures proclaimed by the Jewish Agency failed to "arrest the
succession of shameful events which had disgraced the Jews of Palestine and
dishonoured the Jewish name."
In his address to the Association's council he referred to the "wild and
incredible charges" made against Britain without a shred of evidence.15
The representatives of 11 Christian communities in the Holy land, representing
about 150 000 Palestinian Christians issued a joint statement from the Old City
of Jerusalem. It blamed the partition plan for the "lamentable situation in which
the Holy Land, the cradle of peace, is now placed." It appealed to all those in
power to revoke the plan.16
At the Security Council , Canada and China proposed that a last ditch effort
should be made at conciliation between Arab and Jew before the Council talked
of enforcement measures.
March 4
Numerous incidents were reported throughout Palestine.
A Haganah party (described in one report as a "punitive party") mining a road
near Baytuniyah, seven miles northwest of Jerusalem, was engaged by armed
passengers in an Arab bus, the intended target. The fighting attracted the
attention of Arab forces in the area, resulting in the death of 17 Zionists and one
British officer who tried to rescue one of the Zionists. Two were reported to
have been taken prisoner .
An army convoy was attacked by Arab forces on the Ramallah-Latrun road.
One soldier and two of the attackers were reported killed. In Haifa, Arab snipers
killed one Jew and wounded an army officer who came to his aid.
Special correspondent, Clare Hollingworth, of The Scotsman reported on a visit
to the heart of the hill country in Palestine where in the "Arab Triangle" formed
by the towns of Nablus, Jenin and Tulkarm about 5 000 volunteer soldiers had
encamped. The only large territory left in Palestine where "the Arabs can feel
entirely safe from Jewish eyes."
In her previous visit to the area, six weeks earlier, she had been
continually stopped at unauthorised check points by "ragged bands of selfappointed Arab guards brandishing a curious assortment of antique arms." All
this had changed.
For the first time since the beginning of December she spent three days
without hearing a single shot. The only soldiers to be seen were members of the
official Arab guards - modelled on the British Home guard - and municipal
police who were on duty at the approaches to towns and villages and at tracks
leading to camps of the Arab Army of Liberation, known as the "volunteers".
These were mainly drawn from Iraq, Syria and Transjordan.
Their organisation and discipline were observed to be "surprisingly
excellent." There was a complete absence of "hooliganism" which marked the
early days of partition conflict. Looting was reported to have been stopped.
There was no sign of hostility towards the British, only "utmost friendliness"
was met. One of the first instructions issued to both the Arab Guards and the
volunteers was "Protect Britishers and their property with your lives." It was
obvious that the Arabs were keen for the date of British departure to arrive so
that martial law could be proclaimed and hostilities commence.
An inkling of municipal concerns, no doubt repeated throughout Arab Palestine,
was given in the report. The Mayor of Nablus, Suleiman Bey Toukan CBE,
expressed concern over future finances. The total income in rates and taxes in
Nablus, per month, was 6 000. The municipal hospital alone cost 4 000 per
month to run. The Palestine Government had always subsidised health services,
schools and purchases of seeds and grain.Where was the money to come from
when the British departed? Particularly since Nablus' population had swollen
from 25 000 to 30 000 with refugees from Jaffa and other threatened Arab
towns - not to mention the "volunteers".
Evacuation plans for all British policemen were announced. The police will be
evacuated by 21 May, their wives and children by 28 March.
March 5
Two Arab Liberation Army units of 360 volunteers arrived in Jaffa to aid
resistance.
The Haganah attacked and captured the village of Biyar 'Adas [pop 300]
in Jaffa district following an attack by the ALA on Migdal. The dawn
attack resulted in the death of 15 Arabs with the villagers being expelled.
A light aircraft was used, for the first time, by Zionist forces to protect a convoy
on the Tel-Aviv Jerusalem road. One British soldier was killed and another
wounded during an Arab attack on military transport on the Ramallah-Latrun
road. Two Arabs were believed to have been killed.
A three hundred pound bomb, abandoned in a post office in the Jewish quarter
of Haifa, was disposed off by the Royal Engineers.
March 6
The Haganah declared a general mobilisation of any Jews of military age in
Palestine, including American citizens.
In a precursor of what was to come, with regard to Israel's respect for the
authority of the United Nations, Dr Abba Silver, chairman of the American
section of the Jewish Agency's Executive stated that the Agency fully respected
the authority of the United Nations but reserved the right to take "all necessary
measures" which, in the Agency's view, was merited by the situation.
Members of the UN Secretariat arrived in Jerusalem accompanied by an appeal
from the High Commissioner, General Sir Alan Cunningham, for the safety of
its members. There was little freedom for them to carry out their task, being
housed in a "zone within a zone" and being unable to move about except within
heavily armoured and guarded cars. The Arab Higher Executive commented
that they had arrived at an "unfavourable moment".
2 500 workers in the 34 diamond cutting plants walked out as a result of "holdups by dissident underground organisations" and the theft of 200 000 worth of
diamonds since 1944.
March 8
Zionist sources indicated that the discussions on a merger between the Haganah
and the Irgun was, at present, unlikely to be successful. The stumbling block did
not appear to be the acknowledged terrorist nature of the Irgun. The latter,
apparently, were not prepared to accept complete subordination under the
Haganah.
Three and half tons of arms were discovered at two secret dumps in Marseilles all part of the French move to uncover arms supplies to Palestine. This followed
the seizure of five tons of arms a few days earlier in Paris. This latter cache was
believed to be destined for use by the terrorist Irgun with the French police
satisfied that the arms came from Communist sources.
Britain informed the Palestine Commission that she would not allow any militia
to be formed or equipped on Palestine soil before 15 May. Likewise stocks of
arms would not be allowed prior to this date unless the Commission could
guarantee the security of such stocks.
March 9
The Haganah issued a final call for Palestine Jews between the ages of 17 - 25
to register for active service. The Irgun described as "misleading" reports of a
merger with the Haganah.
The 120 Britons, mostly from religious orders, who decided to stay in
Jerusalem when the British depart started on their preparations to withstand a
siege.
At a meeting of the Security Council the Russians made it clear that they
opposed a US move to try and bring about conciliation in Palestine by further
consultations. The Russians were of the opinion that the Security Council
should enforce the partition plan adopted by the General Assembly.
March 10
Lydda railway station was set on fire by the Haganah.
Arab forces attacked Neve Ya'aqov on the Ramallah road, north of Jerusalem .
One result of this particular clash was the detention by the police of three
Britons in a police armoured car following a chase through the surrounding hill
country. The three were thought to be "absentees" from the Palestine police
(part of the 233 British deserters still at large since 1946). Investigators were of
the opinion that the three deserters had joined forces with the Arabs in the hope
of avenging the deaths of those comrades gunned down by the Zionist terrorists.
A further contingent of 2 500 British troops was evacuated from Palestine.
Plan Dalet was finalised by the Haganah.
Twenty nine Labour MPs and one Communist voted against the second reading
of the Palestine Bill in parliament. The amendment, that it "failed to provide for
the independence of Jewish and Arab States", was rejected. It was made clear
during the debate that it was felt that the Palestine Commission might not be in
a position to take up the reins of power on 15 May . The Security Council and
the relevant UN bodies had yet to make suitable arrangements.
While Britain had up to 1 August to effect a complete withdrawal, British
troops would only be taking action necessary to secure their own safety and
departure from Palestine.
March 11
A car stolen from the US Consul-General in Jerusalem was parked in the
courtyard adjacent to the Jewish Agency HQ, "the most carefully guarded
Jewish establishment in Palestine" by its Arab driver. It exploded, wrecking
offices, killing 12 and injuring 106.
The offices included those of the Jewish National Council and the Jewish
National Fund which "directs finances of colonisation schemes in Palestine".
Among the dead was Leib Yaffa, 74, managing director of the JNF and one of
the five living participants of the first Zionist conference held 50 years
previously. Jewish Agency executive members were in Tel-Aviv and so escaped
the blast.
It became clear that Jewish opinion had been shocked by the "Arab
terrorist efficiency" in penetrating, and perpetrating such a devastating attack
on, the Agency building. Those responsible had made their way through
numerous road blocks, a ten foot high fence of coiled barbed wire - essentially
an "exaggerated copy of the defences the British had erected round the King
David Hotel" after it had been blown up by Zionist terrorists. The driver had
walked into the building, then came out and climbed into a taxi which left the
scene minutes before the blast.
A British soldier was killed and five seriouly wounded by Arab attackers. It was
believed that they were in the vicinity of a Zionist convoy.
During this week the Haganah started a recruitment campaign for men aged
between 26 and 35 years of age.
March 12
Arab gunmen hijacked Ethiopia's consular car at Damascus Gate. The Jewish
Agency announced that all British military and police vehicles entering Jewish
zones in Jerusalem must submit to being searched by "Jewish security squads".
Consular cars and vehicles would be similarly treated, despite their status of
diplomatic immunity. The British response was to compromise and accept this
Zionist diktat.
Americans who, hitherto, had freedom to wander about the Jewish zones
found themselves harassed with their cars being subject to rough scrutiny and
search.
Haganah demolition squads were in action blowing up houses in the Jaffa
suburb of Abu Kebir.
Arab forces attacked the Maccabi quarter on the Tel Aviv-Jaffa border with fire
bombs and mortars. With 40 wooden houses ablaze, the Haganah launched a
strong counter attack.
The Palmach's 3rd Brigade carried out an attack on the village of Al Huseiniya
in Upper Galilee. Five houses were blown up.
Reports indicated that the executive of the Jewish Agency ratified an agreement
- subject to approval of those members abroad - which brought the Haganah
and the terrorist Irgun under a single command as a unified force. It was agreed
that the two bodies would pool men and "war materials" with the Irgun
reserving the right, with Haganah approval, to take individual action against the
British forces "if necessary". British sources believed the Irgun to be as big as
the Palmach, the commando "striking force".17
March 13
The Zionists continued to demolish houses in the Katamon area of Jerusalem.
Twelve houses were blown up in the northern Galilee village of al Husayniyah
[pop 340]. The early morning raid was carried out by 50 members of the
Palmach's 3rd Battalion under the cover of heavy fire. Fifteen villagers were
killed and 20 wounded before the Zionists withdrew.
There was widespread shooting in Jaffa.
A further 2 000 British troops and 200 civilians departed to Britain from Haifa.
March 14
The area near the village of al Husayniyah was placed under a seven day road
curfew following yesterday's raid.
Zionist retaliatory actions, leading to the death of at least 60 Palestinian men,
women and children by the end of the day was accompanied by news headlines
such as "Jews Attack", "Haganah and Stern Gang in Action", "Many Arabs
Killed"
Atrocities and incidents were reported from Safad in the north to Gaza in
the south, combined with flare-ups in Jerusalem. With conflicting reports of
deaths, a 24 hour battle raged around the colony of Gath near Gaza, with
perhaps 37 Arabs and seven Zionists killed.
An attack on the village of 'Ayn Ghazal [pop 2 170] resulted in the demolition
of four houses, the death of one Palestinian woman with five men wounded.
Under cover of a hailstorm and heavy supporting firepower, a Haganah squad
carried out a night attack in the vicinity of Abu Kebir between Jaffa and TelAviv. The five hour attack resulted in the demolition of 15 houses and the
deaths of 20 Palestinians, including, it was believed, women and children. The
squad then moved on to the Manieh quarter of Jaffa and blew up four houses.
At the village of al Faluja [pop 4 670] a Zionist supply convoy entered battle
with the villagers. Three Jews and "scores" of Arabs were also wounded as the
Haganah escorted convoy fought its way through the village.
Later in the day a Haganah demolition squad entered the village and blew
up 10 houses including the three storey town hall and the post office.[Author's
note: al Faluja held out until the Armistice agreement of 1949. The terms of the
agreement were violated two months later when the villagers were coerced into
leaving their homes and village.]
Zionist forces blew up a road bridge on the Haifa-Jenin road and repelled Arab
forces attacking their supply convoy at Gaza.
It was reported that the British army was being increasingly drawn into the
conflict in order to stop the open warfare between the Zionists and Arabs. The
firing which "disturbs" Jerusalem every night was joined by the heavier noise
Army "two pounders" and automatic fire. Shooting was increasingly in
evidence in the Jewish Montefiore quarter of the city, and in a semi-circle
which included Katamon where the Stern Gang, with members dressed as
British soldiers, was blowing up the houses.
Slowly but surely this wealthy area of Palestinian owned Jerusalem was
being razed to the ground.
With the rapprochement between the Haganah and the Irgun, it was
reported that the latter had gained Jerusalem as its fief. It was observed that
"military extremism", as a counter to Arab resistance, was in the ascendancy.
The Stern Gang announced that they intended to start broadcasting in English.
Three former British constables, arrested the previous week in Arab dress while
driving an unnumbered armoured car near Jerusalem, were put into an identity
parade. Jewish witnesses of the Ben Yehuda Street explosion failed to identify
them.
In contrast to the Zionist leadership which operated from within Palestine, it
was observed that few members of the Arab Higher Executive were seen in
Palestine. Further newspaper comment argued that the Arab side of the conflict,
in organising mainly from abroad, gave the Palestine Government little
opportunity to deal with them formally.
The Jewish Agency criticised Britain for "an unexpected dereliction of duty in
allowing the violation of Palestine's frontiers." At the same time, Arab states
were blamed for fomenting strife in Palestine "where the bulk of the Arab
population has shown little disposition for conflict."
March 15
The Haganah demolished 14 houses and damaged 10 others in the villages of al
Ghubayya and al Fawaqa, to the south east of Haifa. There were no casualties
since the villagers had fled following attacks a few days earlier. The New York
Times commented that "In what appears to be a new strategy: concentration on
the destruction of property . . . the Haganah has in the last three days carried out
five such 'punitive' operations."
The village of Wadi al Hawarith, to the north west of Tulkarm (whose
ancestors, from the Haritha tribe, can trace their settlement in the area back to
the 16th century) was "emptied".
Haganah reports indicate that this was "organised by the Arab leadership."
Israeli historian, Benny Morris, found otherwise. He blamed it upon "a
combined effect of physical and psychological warfare."18
A British constable was killed and two soldiers wounded when they
investigated a suspicious light seen in a Jewish house in Haifa. The house was
booby-trapped and blew up.
Diary entry for Sir Henry Gurney, Chief Secretary of the Palestine Government:
"On this wet and cheerless day in Jerusalem - it was snowing this morning - all
is quiet, because in this weather both sides prefer to remain indoors. But the
nightly battle begins regularly about 8 o' clock, and it continues sporadically
till dawn. Two nights ago our windows were blown in by some monstrous
explosions when some more Arab houses just outside the Zone were destroyed
by Jews.
There is little sleep to be had .."19
However the UN team in Jerusalem continued to meet in a "sinister" vacuum.
Together with the Consular Corps, plans for a neutral zone in the city were
discussed.
Zionist sources complained that the British military were discriminating against
the Jews, while overlooking alleged Arab illegal activities.
At the Security Council, where the idea of a truce was put to the warring
parties, the representative of the Arab Higher Committee pointed out that
tinkering with the detail of partition would produce no lasting benefit. Peace in
Palestine could be guaranteed only by the formation of one independent state
for the whole of Palestine.
March 16
Palestinian irregulars blocked of the road to "Zionist colonies" in the Negev at
the the village of Bureir in the Gaza district.
The Haganah filed a report on it actions at the village of al Husayniyya three
days earlier, allegedly in retaliation for an earlier land mine incident. It claimed
that, excluding women and children, more than 30 Arab adults had been killed
with the village abandoned and the residents fleeing across the border. Other
reports indicate that this was the second visitation, by the Palmach, in pursuit of
"retaliatory" action.
The Irgun declared that they would spend the rest of their lives "hounding
down" the sponsors of a suggestion made in the House of Commons that
convicted Zionist terrorists should serve out the remainder of their sentences in
other parts of the British Commonwealth once the Mandate comes to an end.
Apparently the suggestion was regarded as "the most barbaric in British
history."
Haganah radio alleged that former Nazis had involved themselves with
various aspects of the Arab resistance movement in Palestine.
The Arab states indicated that they were prepared to support a truce as long as it
was not used to further the partition of Palestine.
March 17
Haganah forces attacked an Arab convoy near the settlement of Kiryat Motzkin
on the Acre-Haifa road when it attempted to force its way through a road block
on its way to Haifa. The town's commander of its Arab forces, Mohammed bin
Hammad al Huneiti, was killed. The assault on one of the lorries precipitated a
massive explosion which killed ten Arabs and injured seven. Thirty Zionists
were wounded as were two passing British soldiers.
This event seriously undermined the town's morale and was believed to
the reason behind peace overtures from the Haifa Arab community two weeks
later.
The last villagers from Jammasin, on the Sharon Plain, abandoned their village
out of "general fear."
Arab forces carried out a morning attack on the colony of Ein Keshet near
Nazareth.Two Jews were killed with the attackers suffering a number of
casualties.
Hostilities took an ugly turn with religious and health institutions being
implicated in the conflict. Arab reports spoke of a mosque at Qastel village,
eight miles to the west of Jerusalem, being blown up by the Haganah. Several
other buildings were demolished. Allegations were also made that the Jewish
hospital and university on Mount Scopus in Jerusalem were being used for
military purposes.
March 18
Palestinian irregulars attacked a Haganah convoy at the village of Artuf, near
Latrun, west of Jerusalem. The deaths of at least eight Zionists were reported.
In Haifa a British soldier was shot dead and a British official of the Palestine
railways seriously wounded by unknown gunmen operating in
the same area.
Using light automatic weapons and heavy machine guns, an Arab force
ambushed a Jewish car and its British escort when they hit a landmine on the
road from Haifa to Acre.The soldiers were escorting employees from the
Palestine Electric Company who were on their way to carry our repairs to army
barracks. Five soldiers and three Jews were killed with no known Arab
casualties. It took place at the site of the previous day's attack on the Arab
convoy when a lorry with explosives blew up.
For the first time, arms were openly for sale in the Jewish areas of Jerusalem.
The Jewish agency imposed a two percent "Defence Tax" on all purchases of
League itemised terms for a truce acceptable to the Arab States. These included
the disarmament of the Haganah, the deportation of terrorists, cessation of the
immigration to Palestine of those elements destined for the Zionist fighting
forces. The League would also cooperate in any solution designed to bring
about a single Palestinian state based on the principles of democracy.
Settlers from Kfar Darom, near the Gaza Strip, were reported to be harvesting
Arab wheat crops. This was the first documented case of such an incident. It
ceased following attacks by Arab irregulars and eventual intervention by the
British army who ordered both sides to halt their activities.
March 22
Haifa was the scene of further Zionist action, presumably in response to the
bombing of the Jewish dock/warehouse area on Sunday. Police reports indicated
that Zionists dressed in army uniform drove two 3-ton lorries loaded with
explosives into Iraq Street, near the Arab market in the dock area. The drivers
jumped into an accompanying jeep to escape the exploding lorries which
devastated this densely populated part of Haifa.
While some paratroopers rushed up bulldozers to help the hundreds of
Palestinian digging in the rubble, others manned armoured vehicles and, along
with two-pounder guns, strived to keep Arab reaction under control. The search
took place by torchlight with the British being refused entry to the area for three
hours. Five bodies were removed in the immediate aftermath. However,
estimates put the number dead at 50, with 20 seriously injured.
While this was going on, a mortar fired from the Jewish sector of the city and
aimed at the police HQ in Haifa, killed two policemen. For the first time in this
port town, a 25 pounder gun was used by the British against an attack on British
forces.
Several hundred Arab fighters waged an attack against the settlement of Hartuv,
west of Jerusalem. Further to the west, two Zionist armoured cars were disabled
by a mine. The 16 occupants were surrounded and with reinforcements unable
to get through, it was presumed they were killed. Reports indicated that
Palestine was reminiscent of pioneer days with besieging forces attacking
modern stockades throughout the country.
In Jerusalem the British residential security zone was increasingly in the line of
fire from both sides. The Belgian Consulate was hit by a two inch shell. Two
soldiers were killed and three wounded in the City. To the north, another was
shot and seriously wounded while escorting a potash convoy. The Palestine
Railways chief clerk died as a result of being shot in the head four days earlier.
four heavy armour plated cars were mined. British gunners and infantry rushed
to the scene with the assistance of a spotter plane flying overhead. With Arab
sniper fire still holding up the convoy, it was reported that 12 Zionists were
killed and 30 wounded.
In Jerusalem, on the road to Mount Scopus, a Jewish bus was mined resulting in
11 passengers killed. Arab mortar shells fell in the Jewish Yemen Moshe quarter
of the city.
Two bombs were thrown at an Arab bus on the Nazareth road near Haifa,
resulting in the death of two Palestinians with two seriously wounded. Five
Palestinian labourers were shot dead and six seriously wounded when fired
upon from the Zionist colony of Kiryat Motzkin. The chief clerk of the
Egyptian Consulate was shot dead in Lower Haifa.
The Haganah destroyed the Bedouin hamlets near Yevniel, Tiberias.
The colony of Atarot, north of Jerusalem, was attacked by Palestinian guerrillas.
Three young British constables were found guilty of unauthorised carrying of
firearms and ammunition for which they were sentenced to ten years in prison.
A seven year sentence was to run concurrently for possession of an armoured
car. They were found not guilty of firing at a Zionist colony. A Palestinian Arab
temporary constable was sentenced to seven and three years in prison on related
charges.
March 25
Battle-ready troops and a platoon of Bren-gun carriers were in action in
Jerusalem during the night to prevent renewed Arab attacks on Yemin Moshe.
Mortar and sniper fire had been directed onto the quarter following a lorry
bomb in the same area two days ago.
The Jewish Agency requested of the Palestine Comission that Scandinavian
forces stationed in N Germany be called upon to maintain law and order in
Jerusalem. 10 000 Norwegian and Danish troops were envisaged after British
withdrawal. The Agency alleged that the Arabs intended to seize the city and
impose military rule. [Author's note: Keep in mind that Jerusalem had a
separate status under the partition resolution, it was not to be part of the
proposed Jewish or Arab state]
President Truman called for an immediate Arab-Jewish truce with the US
sharing responsibility for a temporary trusteeship. Although "Trusteeship is not
proposed as a substitute for the partition plan".24
March 26
A variety of scattered incidents took place throughout Palestine resulting in six
Jews and four Arabs officially reported as killed.
Yosef Weitz, director of the Land Dept under the Jewish Agency, called for the
expulsion of the villagers from Qumya on the Baysan-Haifa road because they
were "not taking upon themselves the responsibility of preventing the
infiltration of irregulars" . . . "They must be forced to leave their village until
peace comes". According to Israeli historian, Benny Morris, most left on the
same day, by coincidence. They were not according to Morris, ordered to leave
by their Jewish and Zionist neighbours, but there may have been "friendly
advice" to this affect.25
A citrus train was blown up by a mine at Ras el Ain near Tel-Aviv. The driver
and the fireman, both Royal Engineers were injured.
The Haganah reported a five hour battle on the Haifa-Jordan Valley road when a
convoy was attacked. Ten Arab deaths were reported. The settlement of Neve
Yaacov was under attack again. However a minefield apparently brought about
a retreat by the attackers.
Jewish police foiled a robbery attempt on a newly opened branch of Barclays
Bank in Jaffa Road, Jerusalem, by up to 50 men. Arrests were reported.
A tacit truce was arranged between Arab and Jew in Jerusalem where Good
Friday was observed by "Western Christians". Arab National Guards, armed
with tommy guns, escorted a procession into the Old City past hundreds of
armed men observing on the ground and from their sand-bagged positions on
the City walls.
March 27
The village of Bayt Daras, north east of Gaza, suffered a mortar bombardment
which left nine villagers dead, all non-combatants. Crops and livestock were
burned. Two days later the village received another visitation from the Zionists.
"The Arabs feels as strongly about the freedom of his country as any American
would if a Jewish State was proclaimed in New York, and is completely
intransigent and wooden in the face of any argument or persuasion to
recognise the hard facts.......Such is the conflict between Arab and Zionist.....the
Arab knows the Zionist Jew a good deal better than most people. He has had
the opportunity to see through all the propaganda and all the smokescreen, at
the naked spectacle of Zionist aggression on his country as it really is. And it is
this aggression that, in his view, the British have been helping and encouraging
March 28
The carnage continued over Easter with the Zionist forces taking relatively
heavy casualties - 58 killed and 44 wounded.
Two ambushes of convoys took place. The first began on the
Saturday morning when a convoy of 40 trucks with a heavy Haganah
escort made a surprise dash from Jerusalem to the isolated colony of Kfar
Etzion, situated in the hills eight miles to the north of Hebron. The cargo of
goods and munitions was delivered but ran into trouble on the return journey.
Arab forces had piled the road rocks interspersed with mines at short intervals
with hundreds of men waiting on the boulder strewn hillside a mile or so from
Bethlehem near Solomon's Pools. Half the convoy returned to the settlement
with the remainder besieged in a large stone house.
Throughout the day and night a Haganah relief force from Jerusalem tried
to break through. A Zionist plane went into action dropping supplies to the
defenders and bombs on top of the Arab guerrillas. A British task force was
forced, initially, to turn back due to the blocked and mined roads.
Eventually armoured cars of the Light Guards and troops of the Suffolk
Regiment arrived with two-pounder guns and took up positions but did not
intervene.
Meanwhile, British HQ in Jerusalem had arranged a truce with Arab
leaders. Under the protection of British troops and observed by hundreds of
armed guerrilllas, 100 Haganah men and 10 women appeared from the house
and, eventually, as part of the truce, handed their weapons to the British.
The second ambush took place at Kabri, seven miles north of Acre. Forty two
bodies were found near five burnt out lorries. It was reported that a force of 250
Arab guerrillas armed with rifles, light machine guns and two-inch mortars
carried out a sunset attack on six lorries and an armoured car escort. A British
force sent to relieve the Zionists failed to reach them. British artillery then
opened up with 12lb and 25lb high explosive shells to force an Arab
withdrawal.
A reported 30 hour battle at Nebi Daniyal ended at 5o'clock in the morning.
Zionist sources indicated 13 of their force dead with 50 wounded. A British
report indicated Arabs dead with Bethlehem hospital full with Arab casualties.
In Jerusalem, during an exchange of fire between British forces and Zionist
assailants, three Zionists, including a woman, were killed and two seriously
injured. The British suffered one NCO dead, seven others wounded.
Mildred Marston, secretary of the Jerusalem Girls' College was shot dead
by a sniper while on her way to attend Easter service in the City. An Arab sniper
was responsible and the shooting stopped when a policeman arrived on the
scene shouting that the victim was English. Apparently she had been thought to
be Jewish and was shot at in retaliation for the severe mortar bombardment the
previous night.
A Jewish immigrant ship, Yechiam, with 800 illegal immigrants was
intercepted by a British warship and escorted to Haifa.
Thirteen half-tracks (out of a consignment of 50) reached the Haganah from the
US.
The Jewish response was given to proposals made by Richard Graves, chairman
of the Jerusalem Municipal Council. The proposals were reported to have
provided for a volunteer force from the countries having a direct religious
interest in the Holy City - France, Italy, Greece and Britain. The response
indicated opposition to the creation of zones under various religious leaders
which may not be readily accessible to all those who wish to enter.
The Arab League stated that US President Truman's statements on temporary
trusteeship instead of partition had altered nothing. The only difference was that
Truman " now has two eyes instead of one."
March 29
The civil war in Palestine had become a "battle of the roads" with Arab guerrilla
fighters trying to cut off the lines of communication linking Jerusalem and
outlying colonies to the coastal plain around Tel-Aviv. The Arabs had clearly
established themselves as effective in this respect.
Shortage of food and supplies was very much evident in the settler
colonies.The 100 000 Jewish population of Jerusalem was reported to be
suffering from a shortage of food, particularly meat. The Arabs held the view
that by holding on to so many outlying colonies, the Zionists were exposing
themselves to a war of attrition of the type Lawerence of Arabia taught them to
use against the Turks. The Zionists, on the other hand, held the view that "The
settlements are our Maltas in a sea of lawlessness, and the convoys will get
through whatever our losses."27
The Palestine Government warned the Zionists that British security forces will
no longer come to the aid of their convoys if they ignore British instructions
and are attacked by Arab guerrillas. Apparently the convoy rescued from
outside Bethlehem had failed to notify the authorities of its arrangements and,
when they were advised of the heavily blocked road,
American Diplomatic Corp in the Middle East , having discussed the possibility
with Arab and Zionist leaders, was the prime mover in this attempt at halting
hostilities.
The US delegate to the Security Council presented a resolution calling for a
truce to be arranged between the Jewish Agency and the Arab Higher
Committee. The Russians rejected the recent U.S. call for temporary trusteeship
of Palestine, stating that with the partition of the country, independent Jewish
and Arab States was a just solution.
March 31
The Cairo-Haifa train was mined in the vicinity of the Jewish colony of
Benyamina, near Caesarea, by terrorists who detonated the mine from the
vicinity of a nearby orange grove. Forty persons were killed, and 60 injured mainly Arabs - when the engine and the first four carriages were blasted off the
line. The injured were taken in a military convoy to hospital. More than 30
soldiers on board escaped injury.
Zionist sources claimed that the Stern Gang was responsible, with many
of those killed alleged to be members of the Arab Liberation Army.
The railway company announced that the service on the line would be cut
to three time weekly in each direction. The military authorities imposed a road
curfew on all Jewish vehicles in the area between Lydda and Haifa. Meanwhile
Arab sources reported a heavy Arab attack on the large Jewish settlement of
Hadera, about eight miles from the scene of the wrecked train.
Palestinian guerrillas ambushed a Haganah food convoy at the village of Hulda
(other reports said Hartuv), near Ramleh. An Arab source claimed "many Jews
have been killed and wounded." It was the first attempt to run the Arab
blockade for about a week.
The Haganah completed the demolition of Abu Kebir village, near Jaffa.
Liaison officials from the Jewish Agency held talks with the Palestine
Government to agree to terms for the protection by British troops of food
convoys from Tel-Aviv to Jerusalem. The Zionists were told that they must
accept certain conditions including obedience to Government orders on
movements, limitation on numbers of vehicles in each convoy and
agreement that armed Haganah units should not travel with the convoys.
The Government also renewed its request that armed Haganah units be
withdrawn from the Jewish quarter of the Old City. The Jewish Agency was
also asked to remove Irgun terrorist squads from the Old City. It was felt that
the presence of these elements made it harder to arrange a truce in the Old City.
It was reported that the American move for a truce in Palestine was the last
hope that order in the country would be maintained once the British left. The
worst was apparently accepted and efforts were now to be concentrated on the
problem as to whether Jerusalem could be preserved. The Jews were largely in
the north and the west of the City, the newer part, while the Arabs remained in
possession of the south. The two communities meet on the way to Mount
Scopus leading to the Mount of Olives, or in the west, in upper Katamon - a nomans land ruled by snipers.
There were pockets of the Jewish community in Mekor Haim - essentially
a Haganah outpost - and in Yemin Moshe south of the King David Hotel.
There were reports from New York that about 2 500 men had been recruited by
the American League for Free Palestine to fight for a "Jewish State".
Recruitment was organised by a Major Weiser of the Hebrew Legion of
England. State Department officials said that passports would not be issued to
Americans seeking to fight in Palestine.
During March it was reported that 271 Jews, 256 Arabs, 14 British soldiers and
four British constables were killed with 352 serious injuries.
It was reported that Palestinian passport holders - both Arab and Jew - were
being refused visas to enter Cyprus unless it was a return visa. This arose from
the uncertainty of the precise status of Palestinians after Britain abandoned the
mandate on 15 May and would not be responsible for issuing passports after
that date. Cyprus was, apparently, a favourite holiday destination was
Palestinian families. The tourist industry in Cyprus was expected to be badly
affected.
Notes
1 Michael Palumbo, The Palestinian Catastrophe, p.127
2 Norman Finkelstein, Myths, Old and New, (Journal of Pal. Studies, Autumn 1991), p.77
3 Walid Khalidi, Plan Dalet, (JoPS 1987) p.20-21
4 Nur Masalha, (JoPS Autumn 1988) p.177
5 Khalidi, p.16
6 Finkelstein, p.70
7 Khalidi, p.25
8 Khalidi, p.14
9 AJ Sherman, Mandate Days, p.219
10 Benny Morris, The birth of the Palestinian refugee problem, 1947-1949, p.44
11 The Scotsman 1/3/48
12 Henry Cattan, Palestine, the Arabs and Israel, p.224
13 The Times 2/3/48
14 The Scotsman 2/3/48
15 The Times 3/3/48
16 The Scotsman 4/3/48
April
There were twenty five people, twenty four were killed
and only one could escape through a window. . . In
another house they captured a boy who was holding
the knee of his mother. They slaughtered her in front of him.
Mohammed Aref Sammour, witness of massacre at Deir Yassin
For those who long believed that Zionism was an ideology and practice worthy
of admiration this was the month that doubts should have emerged. For the
readers of the odd comment or two made by Zionists with a conscience, this
was the month that flesh was put on these comments.
"But while local Arab leaders' want peace . . . and showed great maturity . . .
the people responsible [Haganah commanders] do not understand the
seriousness of the situation . . I fear that it will be Jews who will cause the
outbreak in Tiberias'
'The aggressive spirit among Tiberias's Jews will bring about disaster . . Our
people continue irresponsible actions..' The Sephardi Jews, in particular, with
their 'boastful' talk, badly hurt the Arabs, who 'only want peace'."
'Heading the security [forces, that is, the Haganah in Eastern Galilee] were
young men who had contempt for death and had in their heads only military
thoughts and plans . . .They laugh at the need to maintain [good] relations with
Arab neighbours . . . They believe simply that there is a need to win using all
means then matters will sort themselves out . . .'
Diary of Yosef Nahmani, Director of JNF office in Eastern Galilee1
Nathan Chofshi (Jewish Newsletter, New York, 9/2/59) in a rebuttal of charges that Palestinians were
ordered to leave by their own leadership3
"We came and turned the native Arab into tragic refugees. And still we dare to
slander and malign them, to besmirch their name. Instead of being deeply
ashamed of what we did and trying to undo some of the evil we committed . . we
justify our terrible acts and even attempt to glorify them."
Nathan Chofshi 4
For those readers of accounts of Zionist arrogance and disregard for the lives
and sufferings of others, this was the month that shocked. For those Palestinians
who hoped that their land would not be turned over to strangers, this was the
month of reckoning.
This was the month that demonstrated, and continues to demonstrate, that
terrorism does pay dividends. It was the month that the tactic of targeting the
civilian population in their villages started to produce results.
" . . . .but the Jews were at the same time developing another tactic which, as
we now know, made a far greater impact on the Arab population of Palestine.
Small groups of the Palmach, ten or fifteen strong, were repeating the tactics
which General Orde Wingate had taught them ten years earlier during the Arab
rebellion.
Marching at night, they penetrated to Arab villages far in the heart of Arabheld territory. Occasionally they blew up a house occupied by an active Arab
nationalist or by foreign Arab volunteers; in other villages they confiscated
arms or plastered the village with warning notices. The effects of such nightly
visitations soon made themselves felt throughout the Arab hinterland. They
caused great disturbances and started an exodus from the areas lying near to
Jewish districts. The Arabs began to feel unsafe, and as the Liberation forces
added to their quota of failure, the Arab flight from the coastal areas began to
assume a general character."5
It was the month that was to put the words "Deir Yassin" on the lips of every
Palestinian.
The massacre at Deir Yassin had a traumatic effect on the Palestinian Arabs
who, increasingly, felt insecure in their own homes, on their own land. It was an
insecurity which the Zionists were only too ready to exploit.
"Lately, ever since the massacre at Dayr Yassin, we have been thinking
seriously of leaving Jerusalem. The most terrible stories have been reached
from eyewitnesses who have escaped from this unbelievable massacre . . . One
For the survivors of the Deir Yassin atrocity the trauma of that day still lives
with them. Radio 4's series "Your land is my land", broadcast during February
1998, interviewed survivors who remembered the massacre as if it were
yesterday. In one case 30 members of an extended family were wiped out by
bloodthirsty Zionist terrorists.
By the middle of April the use of mortars and barrel bombs to terrorise and
convince the civilian population that they should flee and hence avoid their own
"Deir Yassin" came to the fore.
There was the Davidka, a drainpipe mortar which made a lot of noise and
propelled 60lbs of TNT about 300 yards. The fact that it was not particularly
accurate was of little consequence. Aimed in the general direction of densely
populated Arab areas, the desired effect was usually achieved.
The barrel bomb consisted of a barrel, cask or metal drum, filled with a
mixture of explosive and petrol, and fitted with two old tyres containing a
detonating fuse. It was ideal for rolling down the sharply sloping alleys and
stepped lanes of Arab urban areas until it crashed into walls and doorways
making an inferno of raging flames and endless explosions." 6
In addition to the above, Zionist forces resorted to the "ruthless
dynamiting of block after block of bazaars and blind alleys until the panic had
reached sufficient dimensions to end all resistance." One Haifa policeman
recalled the effect of such attacks on Arab civilians. He remembered seeing
"people running through the streets unconsciously . . . . People could not bear
this shelling for more than three continuous days."7
At this juncture, the looting of abandoned Palestinian homes became a fine art,
practised by not a few Haganah regular troops and Irgun terrorists. It was a
practice which was soon to be legitimised by Israel's Law of Absentee Property.
"The Irgun activities in Jaffa also extended to yet another field. For the first
time in the still undeclared war a Jewish force commenced to loot in a
wholesale fashion. At first the young Irgunists pillaged only dresses, blouses
and ornaments for their girl friends. But this discrimination was soon
abandoned. Everthing that was movable was carried from Jaffa - furniture,
carpets, pictures, crockery, pottery, jewellery and cutlery. The occupied parts of
Jaffa were stripped, and yet another tradional military characteristic raised its
ugly head. What could not be taken away was smashed. Windows, pianos,
fittings and lamps went in an orgy of destruction.
It was perhaps natural, though it was certainly detestable, that before
long the rest of the Jewish soldiers of the Haganah and the Palmach should
join in the orgy of looting and wanton destruction which hangs like a black pall
over almost all Jewish military successes. It could have been stopped by firm
action at the outset. But it soon became a practice for which there was always a
material incentive, a sophisticated justification, and an excuse."8
Yosef Nahmani director of the Jewish National Fund in Eastern Galilee from
1935 until his death 30 years later recorded his view of events following the
occupation of Tiberias. Within hours of the Arabs' departure "the Jewish mob
descended upon [the evacuated Arab area] and began to pillage the shops . ."
The looting continued with Haganah contingents taking the lead, followed by
the townspeople "old people and women, regardless of age." "Shame covers my
face and [I] would like to spit on the city and leave it."9
April 1
Shortly after midnight two platoons of the Giv'ati Brigade's 2nd Battalion
entered the village of Abu Shusha [pop. 870] south of Ramleh after a guard at
the nearby settlement of Gezer had been shot dead while trespassing on village
fields. One house and the village well were blown up. Nearby Arab forces
converged on the village, with one Zionist being killed. The Haganah described
the attack as "the model of a studied retaliatory operation."
As this attack was being carried out, Ben Gurion and the Haganah
General Staff decided to launch Operation Nachshon. The aim was to overrun
villages on both sides of the road from Tel-Aviv to Jerusalem. A combined force
of 1 500 Haganah and Palmach troops was mobilized for this purpose.
Israeli historian, Benny Morris, described the Operation as "a watershed,
characterised by an intention and effort to clear a whole area permanently, of
Arab villages and hostile or potentially hostile villagers". He commented that
most villagers fled for safety either before or during the offensives on their
village. "Expulsion orders" were not necessary. All villages were demolished
and levelled shortly after their occupation.10
Zionist sources reported that 17 of their fighters were killed along with
five Arabs when a food convoy, trying to relieve Jews and Zionists blockaded in
Jerusalem, failed in a second attempt to burst through Arab road blocks and
mines south of Lydda. The 60 vehicle convoy, which had already lost a number
of vehicles, was stuck in "ambush alley" between Khulda and Latrun.
Five armoured vehicles were captured, others destroyed. The loss of the
vehicles and the failure of the convoy to get through put the Zionists in a
serious situation. At least 50 lorry loads per week were needed to keep the
Jewish population of Jerusalem in supplies.
The village of Jaramla, whose residents began to leave during February, finally
Palestine. Guns were still firing throughout the country. Decisions in New York
were seen to be out of touch with reality and far removed from grim reality.
The Arab reaction was that there could be no cease fire unless the
partition scheme was dropped. In direct opposition, the Zionists argued that
there could be no truce if the scheme was abandoned. The question of the day
was how the Security Council could impose heavy penalties on those who
ignored any cease fire order. With the reduction of British strength, there was no
international force to enforce compliance.
An Arab spokesman, in Damascus, said that Jerusalem would not be
attacked but would be "strangled" by a blockade, "the city itself will not be
occupied."
Further fighting was reported as the 60 vehicle convoy trapped at Bab el Wad
tried, again, to break out. Haganah sources reported 70 Arab deaths for 20 of
their own men killed.
In Jerusalem, armed Zionists held up two Army lorries carrying 300 sacks of
flour. They stole two Sten guns and two rifles before making off in the lorry. It
was reported that the city's 100 000 Jews were facing slow starvation, with the
few lorries reaching the city being unloaded to supply hospitals and nursing
homes. The view was that the crisis was not between Jew and Arab, but Jew and
Jew. The Jewish Agency was berated for not anticipating that the city - in the
heart of Arab-held territory - could be blockaded by an enemy whom, they had
been told, was "unorganised, ill-equipped and savage". The Agency's position
on the truce was attacked time and time again. The talk in Jerusalem was about
the truce, prayers for a truce were said and if the Jewish Agency still resisted
negotiations, there was talk of a rebellion by the Jewish community in the city.11
April 3
The Haganah captured the village of Castel and nearby quarries, four miles
west of Jerusalem. The residents of Castel were expelled. This took place after a
dawn attack by Palmach commandoes followed by the main force which fought
off counter-attacks.Fifty defenders were forced to withdraw when their
ammunition ran out.
It was thought that this might be the first in a series of operations by the
Zionists to establish bases linking the coastal area to Jerusalem and hence break
the Arab blockade.
The village of Suba, west of Jerusalem, was attacked by the Haganah. Despite
aerial support they failed to capture the village (which resisted occupation until
12 July). The villagers of Ijlil, to the north of Jaffa, fled in fear of Zionist
attacks. Arab fighters were alleged to have urged them to flee, perhaps for their
own safety, since by this time the area between Tel-Aviv and Hertzeliyya had
been "cleansed" of its Palestinian inhabitants.
April 4
Plan Dalet was initiated.
The High Commissioner, Sir Alan Cunningham, broadcast an appeal to both
sides to honour the truce called for by the Security Council. However the stance
of the protagonists remained unaltered. It was quite clear that the address was
merely a polite appeal to the combatants. The power of enforcement lay outwith
the scope of the British, no retribution could be threatened. And, the sound of
gunfire throughout Jerusalem, after the appeal, gave clear indication that the
odds were against a ceasefire.
The Arab Liberation Army using armoured vehicles and artillery, attacked the
Zionist settlement of Mishmar Haemeq, southeast of Haifa in what was
described as the "greatest pitched battle yet fought in four and a half months of
fighting in Palestine." They, however, failed in their objective. Three settlers
were killed and nine injured.
The Stern Gang announced responsibility for blowing up, systematically, 30
houses in the village of Biyar 'Adas [pop 300], north east of Jaffa. The presence
of sandbags round the houses gave the terrorists the pretext for blowing up the
entire village, claiming that they were military objectives. The New York
Times, however, reported that the Haganah had concluded a truce agreement in
the area and that the attackers met no resistance as
the villagers had fled.
Haim Bar-Lev, company commander in the northern Negev reported on an
efficient method of dealing with the Bedouin. This resulted from retaliatory
action following a mine attack on a Zionist patrol in the Shahut area. Two
Palmach armoured cars destroyed nine Bedouin "lay-bys" and one mud hut " . .
by a blow from an armoured car going backwards . ."
Arab forces looted a cement factory close to the settlement of Artue. Damage at
an estimated 150 000 was reported.
Following the appearance of Zionist aircraft, an order was issued prohibiting
civil aircraft from flying within 5 miles of Haifa aiport, unless landing. It
followed similar restrictions over Jerusalem and other towns.
A group of Irgun, mounted on horses and donkeys, stole 1 000 head of cattle
from the village of Samaria. Haganah units later recovered about 100 and
The Haganah, mainly Palmach units, started to blow up and level to the ground
villages in the vicinity of Mishmar Ha'emek. In this task they were assisted by
local settlers. The first to be blown up was Ghubaiya al Tahta, then its sister
village Ghubaiya al Fauqa. These were followed by Khirbet Beit Ras and Abu
Shusha.
In Jerusalem, the Jewish community took steps to lay in reserves of water
following a broadcast that fuel shortages could interrupt supplies. With
Solomon's Pool, Jerusalem's main water reserve in normal summer droughts,
being in the hands of the Arab community and outlying villages having their
own centuries old wells, it was the Jews who would suffer the most.
The Palestine Commission announced that unless the UN or some other agency
comes to the rescue, there will be no shipments of food to Palestine after 15
May. Britain said she would be prepared to act as purchaser up to 30 June if
funds were provided, since Palestine would be bankrupt.
April 9
In what was reported as a "new phase" in Palestine's civil war, the Irgun and
Stern Gang carried out "their first military operation" and "seized" the village of
Deir Yassin, two miles to the west of Jerusalem.14 A small village, situated
close to a predominantly Jewish area, with no military significance. However
its occupation came within the general framework of Operation Nachshon.
In what was to prove a mastery of understatement, The Times prefaced its
small account of the event with "The Jews had an active night, for they took an
Arab village, Deir Yassin." But pointed out that, undoubtedly, the Zionists were
taking advantage of the disarray following the mourning for the Palestinian
leader, Abdul Khader Husseini. His funeral took place the same day in
Jerusalem.
Initial reports indicated that the attack was carried out independently of
the Haganah. The high number of deaths initially reported, 200 admitted deaths
with half being women and children, was blamed on the need to fight from
house to house with hand-to-hand fighting dominating.
As subsequent investigation revealed, these initial reports disguised the
horror of what had taken place at a very quiet and passive village. A village
where there had been a tacit agreement between the mukhtar and the Haganah
that the latter would be informed if "strangers" appeared in the area. Far from
being a "military operation" it was an act of terror and slaughter which had a
major impact on how Palestinian Arabs throughout Palestine perceived their
future, and that of their families, at the hands of the Zionist forces.
The Irgun version of events stated that the surprise dawn attack against this
peaceful village had been preceded by a loudspeaker van urging the residents to
surrender. (Later accounts said the loudspeaker vans had broken down and so
the population could not be warned.) Apparently 300 people surrendered
themselves with the men being taken to Jerusalem and handed over to the
police, the women and children being eventually delivered to a Red Cross
representative.
The New York Times reported "25 men of the (Jewish) Agency's Haganah
militia reinforced 55 Irgunists and 45 Sternists who seized the village."
The History of the Haganah conceded that a massacre had been carried out
"without discriminating among women and children and old people. They
finished their work by loading some of the 'prisoners' who had fallen into their
hands onto cars and parading them into the streets of Jerusalem in a 'victory
convoy', amidst the cheers of the Jewish masses. After that these 'prisoners'
were returned to the village and killed. The victims included men, women and
children; a total of 254 people."15
This figure was disputed with allegations that it had been inflated for
propaganda purposes, to help further terrorise the Palestinian population. A
1987 report by Birzeit University's Research and Documentation Centre
concluded that "the number of those killed does not exceed 120."
Eyewitness account:
"At 2 o'clock this afternoon I saw three trucks driving slowly up and down King
George Avenue bearing men, women and children, their hands above their
heads, guarded by Jews armed with Sten guns and rifles. The mukhtar of Deir
Yassin, his womenfolk and children were in the truck. In front was a young boy,
a look of anguished horror bitten into his face, his arms frozen upright. The
mukhtar stared blindly ahead."16
Michael Palumbo, in his book, The Palestinian Catastrophe, detailed the
events of the 9 April which eventually emerged.
The initial advice given to the Irgun and Stern Gang was not to attack this
"friendly" village. There was a "mutual agreement of non- aggression" between
the villagers and the Jews. This was ignored. At a pre-attack meeting "the
majority was for liquidation of all the men in the village and any others found
that opposed us, whether it be old people, women and children." Rifles and
hand grenades were provided by the Haganah. The assault on the village was
called Operation Unity "because its goal was to demonstrate cooperation
between the Haganah and the terrorist groups."17
The terrorists were not able to penetrate the village following their attack
Another witness, Meir Pa'il, a Haganah regular sent to assess the combat
abilities of the terrorists recorded that the slaughter only stopped when Jews
from nearby Givat Shaul arrived to protest. However prisoners "were loaded
into freight trucks and led in a victory parade like a Roman triumph
through . . . Jerusalem." They were later executed. The photographs taken, like
the official report, remain a secret still kept by the Israeli government.
British investigators concluded that "There is no doubt that many sexual
atrocities were committed by the attacking Jews. Many young girls were raped
and later slaughtered. Old women were also molested." "Many infants were
also butchered and killed. . . . Women had bracelets torn from their arms and
rings from their fingers and parts of some of the women's ears were severed in
order to remove earrings."20
Menachem Begin, a terrorist leader on Britain's "wanted" list, and Israeli prime
minister-to-be sent an order of the day to the perpetrators of the atrocity
"Accept congratulations on this splendid act of conquest. Tell the soldiers you
have made history in Israel."20
The Irgun spokesman said that eight Iraqis had been "executed" after the
capture of the village. A number of houses were blown up after the village had
been thoroughly searched and pillaged. Arms, flour and sugar were sent to
Jerusalem. Several thousands pounds in cash, hidden by the residents in their
houses, were taken by the terrorists.
The onslaught reportedly lasted only about two hours with subsequent
fighting on the outskirts lasting a farther 14 hours. Four Zionists were killed,
with 40 wounded.
The joint commander of the terrorists, while banning British
correspondents and accusing them of being "untrustworthy", summoned
American and Jewish correspondents to a press conference.
"This is the first step. We intend to attack, conquer, and hold Arab territory as
much as we can. That includes all of Palestine and Transjordan if possible."
Three other Zionist successes were reported for the day.
The village of Castel was retaken by a Zionist force, reported to be 500
strong, following a heavy mortar bombardment. Arab forces, under command
of Fawzi Kauwkji of the Arab Liberation Army, later shelled the village in an
attempt to dislodge the occupiers. Zionist planes were reported to have dropped
bombs on the nearby village of Abu Ghoush, damaging an aerial mast at a
police station.
Earlier in the day, an Iraqi encampment at Wadi Sarar was claimed to have been
captured with 50 Arabs killed. The capture of Ein Karim four miles to the west
of Jerusalem, with an Arab population of about 10 000, was reported later in the
day.
In Jerusalem, water supplies were partly restored following landmine damage to
the pipeline. The food situation in the Jewish areas continued to deteriorate as
only one food convoy had come through in 10 days.
A military convoy en route from Haifa to Port Said was attacked by Arab forces
near Barbara, ten miles north of Gaza.
A dawn to dusk curfew, using emergency powers, over a large part of Palestine
was ordered by the GOC Palestine. It was thought that the main purpose was to
facilitate the withdrawal of British troops during a series of night movements.
To a certain extent it could hamper the movement of "illegal armed forces and
terrorists." The districts named were Galilee, Haifa, Samaris, Lydda, Jerusalem,
Bethlehem and Jericho.
April 10
Deir Yassin described as being "wiped out" was reported to be under fire by
both Arab and Zionists. Dr Khalidi, secretary of the Arab Higher Committee
said that 50 bodies of men, women and children still strewn around the village
were being dumped in a disused well where 150 other bodies were to be found.
Dr Khalidi berated the Zionists for the atrocity carried out at the village.
He accused the Jewish Agency of delaying the entry of Dr Renyier of the Red
Cross into the village because the Zionists "did not want him to see the
mutilated bodies and wanted time to clean up the mess." He bitterly gave details
of the victims, including 25 pregnant women, 52 mothers with babies aged
between a few months and a few years, and some 60 girls of varying ages.
All efforts to get the British authorities - civil, police and military - to
visit the village after the massacre were rejected, according to Dr Khalidi. This,
he said, would be brought to the attention of the United Nations.
The Jewish Agency expressed "horrror and disgust" at the massacre in Deir
Yassin and appealed to all parties in Palestine to "conduct the present conflict"
in accordance with the rules of civilised warfare.
April 11
It was reported that the Jewish Agency had accepted the 'ceasefire' called for by
the High Commissioner of Palestine eight days previously. The Arab Higher
Committee was still considering the appeal, according to Arab sources.
Meanwhile Zionist terrorists shot and killed a British soldier while he was
sitting at a coffee house in Rehovoth, to the south of Tel Aviv. Two other
soldiers escaped injury. Their three Sten guns were stolen.
In Jerusalem, Jewish suburbs of Montefiore, Givat Shaul and Beit
Hakerem came under Arab shelling, using French 105 and 75mm artillery, in
which three Jews were killed. The Arab blockade of the roads to the city was
tightened. However concern was expressed over the ability of the Arabs to keep
their forces in Jerusalem supplied with ammunition, in addition to the
leadership problems following the death of Abdul Kader Husseini.
Several thousand Iraqi fighters of the Arab Liberation Army attacked the
settlement of Mishmar Haemek, following an artillery barrage. Fighting
continued in the area around Castel village when the Haganah raided the nearby
village of Qalunia and blew up some houses.
Newspaper accounts of the fate of a small village, particularly accounts of
events taking place at a distance, tend to be prosaic. The reality is rarely
depicted. The wider military master plan is never concerned with its results on
humanity.
Qalunia, or Qalunya, was one such village. About three miles to the west
of Jerusalem, it was identified as the Canaanite town of Mozah (Joshua 18:26)
Under the Emperor Vespasian it became Colonia Amosa around 71AD. The
Crusaders called it Qalonie and in 1859 it became the first location in Palestine
where Jewish immigrants acquired land for cultivation.
For the Palestinian Arab villagers, about 1 260 in number (with a further
350 who were Jewish), it was their tragedy that their village was a main target
of Operation Nachson, with the Palmach leading the attack. Two days were
spent systematically razing the village to the ground. The New York Times
reported that the Haganah "blew up a score of houses and left the entire village
ablaze" with the Irgun claiming that the villagers had fled as a result of Deir
Yassin.
A more graphic and poignant account was given by one of the observers,
an Anglo-Jewish resident of Jerusalem, Harry Levin, who accompanied the
Palmach:
"Suddenly the village seemed to erupt. Our mortars started it, and at once
became a bedlam of answering fire . . .They fired wildly to all points of the
compass . . suddenly an explosion that seemed to rip open the hillside; shrieks
of terror. Our shock troops and sappers had reached the houses . . . more
explosions . . . in half an hour it was over."
Levin counted fourteen dead "but there were more". As he left the village
"sappers were blowing up houses. One after another, the solid stone buildings,
some built in the elaborate city style, exploded and crashed . . ."
"Within sight of Jerusalem I still heard the explosions rolling through the hills;
and in between somewhere in the lonely distance, still rose the half- hearted
barking of the village dog."21
On the night of the 11th, another historic village, Ein Hawd, [pop 650] to the
south of Haifa, together with the neighbouring village of Ein Ghazal were
attacked by Zionist forces. On this occasion the attack was repulsed.
Three British soldiers were killed and six wounded when two military trucks
ran into an Arab mortar barrage in the same area.
As a prelude to attacking and capturing Tiberias the Haganah deployed a tactic
which was to be used to good effect elsewhere. This was to capture a nearby
village, make an example of it, induce fear amongst the city's residents and
stimulate an outflow of refugees.
The village of Nasir al Din [pop 90] was chosen on this day. Two platoons
of the Golani Brigade, stationed in the Jewish Quarter of Tiberias, descended
upon the village. Some non-combatants were apparently killed and some houses
destroyed. Most of the population fled to Lubiya or to Tiberias, from where
British troops evacuated them to Lubiya. Eyewitnesses detailed the killing of
eight men, one woman and an unspecified number of children. The mud houses
were burned, the stone houses blown up and the remaining villagers expelled.22
The arrival of the terrorised villagers undermined morale in Tiberias
which was effectively isolated from the nearby large village of Lubiya. The
city's vulnerability was thereby enhanced.
A police report detailed an attack on Kfar Darom, the only Zionist settlement on
the coastal plain south of Gaza. Eleven Egyptians were reported dead or
wounded before a ceasefire, brokered by a British officer commanding troops in
the area, took effect.
At a meeting of the Arab League in Cairo it was stated that even the most
militant Zionists must realise that they cannot themselves establish a state by
force, that a Jewish state established by international arms would have to be
sustained by international arms in the face of perpetual Arab hostility, and that
there could be no peace in such an entity.23
April 12
The sacking of Deir Yassin, the savage and inhumane dumping of 150 corpses,
almost all women and children, into the "musty depths of an unused water
cistern" was reported to have both inflamed and horrified Arabs throughout the
Middle East. A full scale Arab-Jewish war was predicted before 15 May.
had been destroyed. The New York Times reported that the villagers had been
"evacuated" and the Haganah blew up "many houses" as a "punitive measure."
Fighting for the Jaffa road seemed to have ceased. Reports that emerged
indicated that because of differences in command, Arab forces from the north
had departed, taking their artillery with them. The sentiment was expressed in
one report that many Arab supporters hoped that an outsider would take over
the Jerusalem area, sort out some of the factions, and institute some type of
training for the many bands of "impromptu" soldiers waiting on the sidelines.
A British troop and ammunition train was attacked by Zionists in the orange
grove belt near Rehovoth. Large quantities of arms were looted.
The south-west corner of Jerusalem, which housed the British residential
security zone and various foreign consulates, was reported to be under threat.
The Palestinian forces had taken up positions in Katamon, with the Zionists
entrenching themselves on along ridge 200 yards away.
The eldest son of Viscount Samuel and director of the Palestine broadcasting
service, Edwin Samuel, narrowly escaped being abducted by two Arab gunmen
in Jerusalem and dragged in to the Arab quarter. He managed to break free and
escape into a nearby British security zone.
The Zionist General Council, meeting in Tel-Aviv, ratified a resolution to bring
Zionist "dissident" groups - the Irgun and Stern Gang terrorists - under "Jewish
national discipline." It was agreed to proclaim the independence of a Jewish
State on 16 May, immediately upon the end of the British mandate.
The process of removing the British presence from Palestine moved up a gear.
Camps were disappearing overnight. Where previously there were rows of tents
and Bren guns covering barbed wire entrances, there was left a few rusting tins
and shallow brick surrounds. The road to Haifa could be seen filled with lorries
filled with furniture from military messes and offices.
The High Commissioner of Palestine, Sir Alan Cunningham, signed an order
banning British troops and police from marrying Palestinian girls - Arab or
Jewish - without prior consent. A British source alleged that some Jewish girls
were offering between 400 and 500 to British troops and policemen as
marriage dowries. As British subjects they would then be evacuated from
Palestine along with their husbands.
April 13
One of Jerusalem's 'hottest' battles raged for six hours during the day, resulting
in the deaths of two British soldiers and a senior police officer who, as part of a
Highland Light Infantry squad, arrived in time to save a ten vehicle Zionist
convoy from being annihilated on Mount Scopus. At least ten Arabs were killed
following the arrival of the British forces.
The convoy had been trying to reach Hebrew University and Hadassah
Hospital when it was hit by two inch and three inch mortars. The area was
covered with piles of burned corpses of at least 35 Zionist fighters by the time
the British brokered a truce was implemented. The Arabs collected their own
casualties while the British soldiers carried the wounded Zionists to Hadassah
Hospital.
Two convoys totalling about 200 lorries arrived in the Jewish area of Jerusalem
with food from Tel-Aviv.
This was the day that the family of Palestinian writer and teacher, Khalil
Sakakini, decided to flee their home:
"Day and night,the heavy artillery shelling and firing of machine guns has been
continuous, as if we were on a battlefield . . . Night falls and we cannot get any
sleep, and we say that when the morning comes we shall leave our neighbourhood of Qatamon for somewhere else, or leave the country altogether."25
A force of 500 Haganah troops attacked the village of Saris [pop560] to the
west of Jerusalem. In this early morning attack mortars and small arms were
used. Seven villagers were killed, including some women. Up to 35 houses
were destroyed in addition to the village mosque and school.
Later the Haganah chief, Israel Galili, wrote to the JNF official, Yosef
Weitz, urging that a settlement be established on Saris "as soon as possible." It
was deemed that a settlement at this and seven other sites was "important for
security."26 These sites were Beit Mashir, Saris, Ghuweir, Abu Shusha, Kafr
Misr, Khirbet Manshiya, Tantura and Bureir. Most of the village sites had yet to
be abandoned at this point.27
With the ending of Operation Nachshon, the Haganah launched Operation
Harel. Along with Saris, the villages of Biddu, Beit Surik, and Suba (Jerusalem
district) were attacked and destroyed.
Twelve Palestinians were killed and fifteen wounded when Zionist forces
attacked the village of Lajjun near Jenin.
Zionist self-government plans started to be implemented in advance of the
proclaimed commencement date of 16 May. Palestine Government ID cards and
Press credentials would no longer be adequate for passing through Jewish
quarters. All Jewish publications printed in Palestine together with photographs
made in Jewish areas were to be censored. No attempt was made, at this stage,
to censor outgoing news stories. The Hebrew Civil Service Commission filled
key posts.
An army of approximately 5 000 uniformed Syrians, Iraqis, Lebanese,
Egyptians,Trans-Jordanians and Palestinians left, in small groups, from Syrian
training camps. It was described in reports as "the second Arab army for the
Liberation of Palestine" and was expected to establish itself to the south of
Fawzi Kauwkji's army. A third force was expected to move into Southern
Palestine from Egypt.
April 14
A procession of several thousand Orthodox Jews marched through the streets of
the Jewish quarter of Jerusalem with banners demanding peace and a ceasefire.
According to a statement issued by the Orthodox Jews, the Haganah arrived,
tore down the banners and assaulted the demonstrators with their rifle butts.
Later, a larger Haganah force was bussed in to the city. They fired in the
air to disperse the demonstrators and "also beat the demonstrators without
mercy, using their rifle butts."The comment was also made that the Zionist
leadership was trying to hush up the matter.28
It was reported that 12 Arabs were killed and 15 injured following further
clashes at Mishmar Haemek settlement halfway between Haifa and Jenin
bringing Arab casualties, according to Zionist sources, to 46 in number. No
Zionist casualty figures were released.
The Haganah attacked the Palestinian Druze villages of Hosha and
Khirbet Qasir, near Haifa.
A British soldier was shot and injured by Arabs near Tiberias. Another soldier
was injured in Safad when a Jewish house was blown up. An aeroplane was
used to bomb the village of Deir Tarif. Five villagers were wounded including a
two year old child. The village of Daliyat al Rawha [pop 600 inc 320 Jews] was
occupied by the Haganah.
Yosef Weitz, the JNF official recorded in his diary:
"Is it not now time to be rid of them? Why continue to keep in our midst these
thorns at a time when they pose a danger to us ? Our people are weighing up
(solutions)."29
By this date, ten villages in the Mount Castel area were in Palmach hands. Each
had been systematically destroyed on the night it was occupied.
All Arab workers walked out of the Consolidated Refineries plant in Haifa.
They demanded that the Iraq Petrol Company accept responsibility for the
injuries and deaths of workers on the roads. The company ceased operations.
A meeting of Arab leaders took place in Cairo, with the shortcomings of the
Arab resistance movement against partition very much on the agenda. In
particular, lack of arms and reserves of war materials and trained men, all
shortages suffered by both Palestinian Arab fighters and members of the
"Liberation armies." The question of general leadership and the possible
establishment of an Arab Government for Palestine was crying out for an
answer. The latter was answered by the continuation the status quo of having a
"military regime"in the Arab areas, including the fighting zones.
Inevitably political interests, of the various parties involved, impinged
themselves on the deliberations. However the Secretary-General of the Arab
League had striven for months to maintain a balance, to preserve unity among
the various Arab states and parties, and find an acceptable solution to halt
Zionist expansionism. The consensus seemed to be that he had been successful,
so far.
The British Government rejected criticism levelled at it by the UN Palestine
Comission.
"The fact that political developments outside the jurisdiction of the Palestine
Government made it almost impossible for them to operate is surely a poor
foundation upon which to blame the Palestine Government for the situation
now facing the country."30
The Commission decided to proceed immediately with the creation of a nucleus
of a UN police force for Jerusalem. Apparently 200 British members of the
present force said they would be willing to serve.
The Security Council completed drafting the resolution on a truce in Palestine.
It called upon the representatives of the opposing factions to cease a number of
actions viz. military actions, sabotage and violence; the bringing of armed
bands and war materials into Palestine; political activity prejudicial to the rights
of Arab and Jew. It was assumed that with no military force to impose the terms
of the truce, it would be rejected.
April 15
Following an all night battle, the Haganah claimed to have inflicted a heavy
defeat on the Arab forces in the Megiddo area of the strategic Emek Valley, with
the Arab Liberation Army in full retreat. More than 100 Arabs were reported
dead.
It followed two weeks of military action around the colony of Mishmar
Haemek. This culminated in the night attack by well armed Haganah units.
Armed with machine guns and mortars, they advanced from a number of
settlements in the area, supported by some small aircraft. They succeeded in
isolating the Arab forces, occupying four villages in the process. Their advance
stopped near Jenin at the apex of the Arab triangle - Nablus-Tulkarm- Jenin.
With the evacuation of army camps by the British, struggles took place for their
possession. Twenty one Arabs were killed in the resulting conflicts.
A few hours after troops moved out of Tel Litvinsky camp, Arab and
Zionist forces moved in, with the former being forced to withdraw. It was of
strategic importance, standing on the border between Jewish and Arab areas
with a position of dominance over the road to Lydda Airport.
There was a repeat performance at Sadi Surar, 15 miles to the south east
of Tel Aviv, on the supply route to Jerusalem. Iraqi troops took first possession,
followed by the Zionists who attacked and blew up several buildings.
After receiving "friendly advice" from the Haganah, the village of al Tirah
with a mixed population of about 150 Arabs and 50 Jews was "emptied" of its
Arab residents.31 Zionists forces attacked Lajjun
The town of Salama [pop 6 730], to the east of Jaffa, was subjected to a mortar
bombardment of 3 inch shells. By the end of the month the defenders had run
out of ammunition and were forced to leave.
The Haganah ordered the villagers of Miska [pop 1 060] to leave, but the order
was ignored.
A Haganah squad carried out a raid on the village of Sarafand al Amar [pop 1
950] and demolished a three storey building. It was alleged that it was used by
militia forces led by the Palestinian guerilla commander Sheikh Hasan Salam.
There were varying accounts of the casualties, with the British stating 16 dead
and 12 wounded in the ruins of the building.
The village of al Manshiyya, identified by Haganah chief, Israel Galili, as being
"important to security" and an important site for a settlement, was evacuated.
Apparently an agreement had been reached with the Haganah that local
settlements would safeguard their property until they could return at the end of
the war. By the end of the month the Haganah were systematically destroying
the houses with the assistance of local settlers.
The bodies of three British soldiers were found stripped of their uniforms after
mines exploded under their railway inspection trolleys near the Jewish area of
Rehovoth.
It is believed that the attacks on the two villages may have facilitated the
fall of Haifa.
The New York Times quoted British authorities as saying that Haganah
demolition squads had blown up the remaining houses in the village Abu
Zurayq, south east of Haifa. The paper also reported on the capture of al Lajjun,
to the northwest of Jenin. "Lajjun is the most important place taken by the Jews,
whose offensive has carried them through ten villages south and east of
Mishmar Ha'emak." Women and children were, according to the report,
"removed" from the village. Twenty seven houses were blown up by the
Haganah. The mosque was eventually converted into a carpentry workshop.
April 17
Three American soldiers were reported killed and five wounded following a
Zionist attack on an ammunition train at Binyamina, 20 miles south of Haifa.
Four Britons were reported missing, with three Zionists killed and ten wounded.
It took place north of Hadera with uninjured guards being forced to load the
ammunition into lorries.Three of the Zionists were killed when a relief train
arrived, but 20 tons of arms and mortar ammunition was successfully looted. It
was reported that Jews took the wounded British to hospital.
The timely arrival of British armoured car at the Waldheim, established in
1902 by German "Templar" colonists and described in one report as a "German
village"- an enemy aliens internment camp since 1939, saved the lives of three
British guards. The camp had been taken over by Zionists and the guards were
in the process of being strung up when the troops arrived. Further troops were
sent to rescue 80 Germans in the camp by which time two Germans had been
killed.
The historic village of Abil al Qamh (with traces of habitation as far back as
2900BC) [pop 428] to the north of Safad was seized by the Palmach. It became
a base for launching attacks into Syria under the name of Operation Yiftach,
commanded by Yigal Allon.
The Palestinian Arab villagers of Wadi Hunayn [pop 3 380 including
1 760 Jews] fled after being targeted or threatened in the course of the
Haganah's coastal "clearing" operation. The nearby Zionist settlement of Nes
Tziyyona was built on land purchased from the village in 1883 and one of the
few settlements that employed non-Jewish labour. It was described as "the only
genuinely 'mixed' locality in Palestine where Zionist immigrants and
Palestinians actually lived in close proximity."33
Druze Arab forces were reported to have suffered heavy losses when they
launched an attack on Ramat Johanan.
April 18
Reports abounded of imminent arrival of King Abdullah's troops from
Transjordan, in particular, the Arab Legion. There were denials from Fawzi
Kaukji, commander of Arab forces in Palestine, that a large force had started to
move over the border from Syria.
There were numerous reports of foreign troops serving on both sides of the
conflict. Kaukji was convinced that Russian troops were serving with the
Zionist forces - as demonstrated by the physical appearance of Russian
speaking troops together with their different methods of action. Further
allegations were made of Russian commanders leading the Zionist forces at
Mishmar Haemek. They had arrived disguised as civilians in a boat load of
illegal immigrants. Fifty Russian officers, up to the rank of colonel, were
alleged to be active in Northern Palestine.
These reports were flatly denied by Zionist sources. But they did give rise
to reports that King Abdullah of Transjordan was considering the early
intervention of his forces in the wake of Russian involvement.
The largest convoy since the Arab blockade started - 300 lorries with 1 000 tons
of supplies - reached Jerusalem. Apparently the convoys were being organised
by a former British colonel.
It was reported that a "strong sense of disbandment and disorganisation" had
descended on Palestine. Means of communication or supervision had failed.
"Hearsay" prevailed in the already semi-independent Jewish and Arab areas.
A battle was reported around the settlement of Nevi Yacouv which sat astride
the main road from Jerusalem to the Arab triangle. It was reported that the Arab
Judean Army had entered the settlement and destroyed some houses. The
Haganah, while admitting that a "terrific fight" was in progress, denied the
settlement had been evacuated. The Highland Light Infantry reported that the
Arabs "won a victory and captured 20 Jewish armoured cars."
In Jerusalem a heavy explosion and a few lighter ones were heard in the Jewish
quarter following bomb warnings to the foreign press HQ. A house on the fringe
of the Yemen Moshe quarter was blown up.
[One source stated that the village of Khirbat Nasir al-Din was attacked by the
Haganah on this day, resulting in a massacre. However the 11 April is the
accepted date for this particular atrocity.]
The fall of Tiberias, on the shores of the Sea of Galilee, merited little attention
in the press. With nearly 50% of the community Jewish, and resident on the
hillside overlooking the old town, the Palestinian Arab population were at a
disadvantage. Prior to being attacked by the Haganah, the latter had been well
warned not to cooperate with outsiders and not to resist partition. However,
with the imminent departure of the British, the Palmach had been sent to bolster
the Jewish militia in the town.
Under cover of darkness, a coordinated effort was made to cut the Arab
part of the town in two. The civilian population was terrified by a night assault
using barrel bombs, dynamite, loudspeakers constantly broadcasting "horror
sounds". So much so that by dawn the population, with Deir Yassin very much
on their collective mind, only wanted a safe refuge. An appeal was made to the
British to help them. It was agreed that they would stay on for a few days. A
request was made to King Abdullah of Transjordan for help. In the only action
of its type, lorries were sent by the King to take the women and children to
safety. The British, who did not want to be involved in any fighting, persuaded
the reluctant men to go.
By 19:00 the town was in Zionist hands. During and after the battle in the
town looting was reported, with churches being targets for desecration. UN
investigator, Captain F. Marchal, commented
"In spite of the guarantee given several times by the Jewish authorities to
respect churches, convents, schools and other buildings belonging to the
religious community, those places have been submitted to depredations
committed at Tiberias undoubtedly by the Jews, although these places were
private property. They have been occupied by troops without any notice and
sometimes without any necessity."34
On this day, the parents of young Palestinian Arab, Anis Sayigh, arrived in
Sidon in the Lebanon. With his father a clergyman in the Christian church with
responsibility for his parishioners, a British officer had gave Father Abdallah,
Protestant pastor in Tiberias, and his wife Afifa, instructions to leave their
peaceful town. The town was apparently due to fall to Zionist forces in a few
hours and the pastor was advised that "It is the will of God to bring the children
of Israel back to their country after 2 000 years of exile so that they may
establish their state . . . . this is their land and now they are returning."
Anis Sayigh, A Personal Testimony, (Cornerstone, Autumn 1998 p.6)
In preparation for another evacuation, this time from Haifa, General Stockwell
gave advance notice of the intention to quit to the leaders of the town's Jewish
community. He failed to give the Arabs the same warning. This was to give the
Zionist forces plenty of time to plan the take over strategic points within the
town and ensure the subsequent flight of its Palestinian Arab residents.35
Following the rejection of a ceasefire by the Haganah and the Jewish Agency
during the fighting around Mishmar Haemek, the decision was taken to attack
and destroy about ten villages near the settlement. Al Kafrayn [pop 1 420] was
the largest. Its final destruction was postponed until the 19th, allowing it to be
used to train Zionist units to fight in built-up areas. The Haganah General Staff
was then informed "At the end of the exercises, the village of el Kafrin was
blown up completely."38
April 20
Two British soldiers were killed and another seriously wounded as they went
about their task of announcing over a loudspeaker the nightly border area
curfew along the Jaffa Tel-Aviv road. They were fired upon by a large party of
Zionists.
Arab sources claimed that a Haganah arms factory in Haifa had been torched
with the deaths of five Haganah men. It was also claimed that part of the
Palestine mills at Haifa had been destroyed. Twenty five of the Haganah guards
were reported killed in the action.
A post-office van was held up by Arabs in Jerusalem. Seventy six bags of
mail were looted.
A convoy of 300 trucks with a Haganah and Irgun escort of 2 000 men was
engaged in battle for most of the day in the valley of Bab el Wad, 12 miles to
the west of Jerusalem. Twenty lorries were destroyed by Arab forces firing from
the hillside with machine guns, mortars and grenades. Zionist losses were put at
10 with 30 wounded. Arab casualties unknown. The remaining trucks
eventually reached Jerusalem.
Zionist forces occupied the villages of Beir Surik and Biddu, five miles
northwest of Jerusalem. It was reported that the villagers had fled
following loudspeaker warnings from the advancing force. Explosives and 6
inch mortar fire demolished many houses in the village.
Units of the Alexandroni Brigade attacked the village of Miska and forcibly
expelled its inhabitants.
Reports indicated that the villagers of Sarafand al Kharab [pop 1040] fled,
fearing an attack. A week earlier, twelve houses had been blown up up in nearby
al Ramla. The situation was repeated in 'Arab al Zubayd [pop 890] where the
villagers fled fearing a Zionist attack.
The American cargo ship, Exford, was held by Beirut port authorities when it
April 22
The assault on Haifa by Zionist forces (in accordance with Plan Dalet), which
had started the previous evening, continued throughout the day, the eve of the
Jewish feast of the Passover. In so doing, they "jumped the gun", starting
hostilities in order to gain strategic positions within this main seaport before the
withdrawal of British security forces.
The attacking forces made liberal use of psychological and terror tactics.
Jeeps with loudspeakers broadcast "horror sounds" - shrieks, wails, anguished
moans of Arab women, wails of sirens and alarm bells. One Haganah officer
commented on a sepulchral voice calling out in Arabic 'Save your souls, all ye
faithful! Flee for your lives!' accompanied by threats to use poison gas and
atomic weapons.
The Carmeli Brigade was ordered to "kill every [adult] male
encountered" and to attack with firebombs "all objectives that can be set
alight".41 The Brigade commander, Moshe Carmel, feared that many Arabs
would remain in the city and ordered the shelling of Arab crowds on the market
square with three inch mortars. The terrorised crowd broke into the port area,
stormed the boats and fled. The mortar fire lasted all day, even although no
resistance was shown by the civilian population.42
A British observer noted that during the morning the Haganah was
"continually shooting down on all Arabs who moved in Wadi Nisnas and the
Old City." This included completely indiscriminate and wanton machine gun
fire and sniping on women and children
". . . attempting to get out of Haifa through the gates in the dock . . .There was
considerable congestion outside the East gate of hysterical and terrified Arab
women and children and old people on who the Jews opened up mercilessly
with fire."42
The "efficacy" of these "indirect methods" was singled out by an IDF
intelligence report of June 1948 in its recommendations for precipitating the
exodus of Palestinian Arabs from their land.41
There were those who reported on the carnage in approving, sanitised
tones "The planning and execution by our fledgling army was, by all accounts,
perfect: a three pronged attack from Mount Carmel and a series of concerted
pincer movements in the Arab sectors lower down. In the level stretches, units
of our men sprung up like clockwork and battered their way into key
points . . ."43
Heavy casualties were reported with hundreds of Palestinian women and
children being evacuated to the western part of the town or Acre. By the end of
the day hospitals were filled with the wounded, with the Haganah claiming to
have killed 400 Arabs, undoubtedly the majority being civilians. The port area
continued to be held by British troops, as was the connecting road to the
area. It was noted that "The acts of looting in the village are similar to those in
all of the villages evacuated by the inhabitants."46
Three naval ratings were found guilty of desertion at a naval court in Gibraltar.
They had jumped ship in Beirut and admitted to attempting to join the Arab
forces in Palestine.
April 23
The Haganah reported that most of the Arab population of Haifa had been
"evacuated", with nearly 40 000 having left by sea and road. It was reported
that the Zionist forces, including the Irgun, had agreed to permit the evacuation
providing arms and ammunition were left behind. Arab leaders had rejected the
conditions of a Zionist truce which included the withdrawal of "foreign fighting
forces" - an apparent reference to the Arab Legion and groups of fighters from
neighbouring Arab states. British military personnel assisted in transporting the
refugees or, as reported, the "evacuees".
The Arab residents of Jaffa, the port next to Tel Aviv, were increasingly
on the edge, fearing a Zionist onslaught. There were reports that some
Palestinian Jerusalemites, fearing the worst, had sought refuge in outlying
areas.
Meanwhile, Sir Alan Cunningham, High Commissioner for Palestine, was
blaming the Arabs for the previous days fighting in Haifa. He alleged that "The
battle was the direct consequence of continuous Arab attacks during the past
four days." He said that the attack had been carried out by the Haganah and was
"no massacre." "The Arabs themselves were responsible for the outbreak,
despite repeated warnings. As always, the Army was completely impartial, and
any suggestion that they are taking sides is not only untrue but deeply
resented."47
Three British officers were wounded helping the Palestinians. Casualties
were given as 100 Arabs and 15 Jews killed not counting the "probable
casualties" amongst the fleeing women and children.
In much the same tenor of blaming the victims for their own plight, The
Jewish Agency asserted that they had not wanted such an "evacuation" and
denied that a policy of "extermination" was being carried out against Arabs in
Jewish dominated areas. The "unnecessary" evacuation from Tiberias was
recalled and allegations were made that Arab leaders were ordering such moves
in order to "besmirch the Jews", to arouse feelings in adjoining Arab states and
so bring about armed intervention.
In further action to secure control of the approaches to Jerusalem, Zionist forces
attacked three villages. Shufat, on the main Nablus road, was raided and some
houses destroyed. The deserted village of Beit Iksa, two miles northwest of
Jerusalem, was occupied. Alleging that it had been used by Arab troops and that
arms had been found, the village was razed to the ground.
The neighbouring village of Nabi Samwil was attacked. Arab sources
indicated that counter attacks were taking place.
The Security Council appointed a three-power commission - French, Belgian
and U.S. consuls - to assist in bringing about the observance of its Palestine
truce resolution. The vote was eight in favour, none against, with the Ukraine,
Russia and Colombia abstaining.
Ben Gurion, in an eve of Passover message, spoke in terms of "liberating
Tiberias and Haifa" a choice of language which has echoed throughout the land
of Palestine ever since. "Tiberias was again Jewish after hundreds of years."48
April 24
In the early hours of the morning, the Irgun (with their reputation well earned at
Deir Yassin and other attacks) moved across the battle scarred no-man's land
between Tel-Aviv and Jaffa. The entry of up to 3 000 terrorists drawn from all
over Palestine for this particular operation, into Jaffa which, according to the
partition plan was outwith the area allotted to a Jewish State, had been preceded
by a barrage of mortar shells. This was followed by an infantry and armour
thrust, then the Irgun advanced from house to house using hand grenades and
anti-tank bazookas - much of the armour and some of the arms having been
captured from the British army and police.
It followed months of daily exchanges of fire, with the Irgun using the
pretext of Jaffa being used as a base for attacking Jews in Tel-Aviv. Early in the
day Arab sources confirmed that the Masnsheih quarter had been penetrated and
the police station taken. The Zionist refused to allow foreign correspondents
into the "combat zone". However it was evident that well equipped Irgun
members, both male and female, were taking part. The Irgun's chief and future
Israeli prime minister, Menachem Begin, was reported to be directing the attack
which came to a halt when the Irgun eventually faced British troops backed by
mechanised equipment.
There was no confirmation that it had been communicated to the Haganah
that if the Irgun did not fall back to the original position along no-man's land
then the British would counter attack and shell Tel-Aviv. The Irgun withdrew
from Jaffa and by late afternoon only the odd burst of gunfire could be heard,
with no smoke or sign of flames to be seen. The Haganah estimated that 10
Arabs had been killed and 50 wounded. Foreigners in Jaffa, mostly French
religious workers, were believed to be safe. The Haganah claimed that they had
been a restraining influence, advising against the attack.
However one objective had been achieved. Many of Jaffa's 60 000
residents, fearing such an attack, had fled a few days earlier - by road and sea.
Fleets of small crafts, some packed to the gunwhales with desperate refugees,
could be seen pulling out into the Mediterranean.
The former RAF station at Ein Shemmer, 20 miles to the south of Haifa, was
occupied by Zionist forces following the departure of the British.
A battle raged around Lydda Airport vacated during the day but reported to be
still in the possession of a company of Argyll and Sutherland Highlanders. The
Arab Legion had taken control of that part devoid of the British, with Zionist
forces reported to be on the attack. A British Overseas Airways official said that
before leaving, staff from the Jewish Airlines had sabotaged communications
equipment assisted by the airport's hotel waiters. With the exception of
Egyptian Airways, all international services were suspended, including the
BOAC service from London, due to "operational difficulties at Lydda."
The village of Ghwway Abu Shusha, near Tiberias, which was first attacked in
January was re-visited. On this occasion, the village was taken over by Zionist
forces. The village of Balad al Shaykh, near Haifa was likewise re-visited and
taken over by the Zionists after British troops evacuated the remaining
residents. Apparently 22 old rifles, presumably used for defence purposes, were
handed over. The neighbouring village of Yajur was also emptied of its
inhabitants.
In the case of Ghwway Abu Shusha, it was visited by the Palmach at
dawn. With few arms at the villagers' disposal, the women and children had
already been evacuated to the nearby al Rama. The 48 remaining defenders had
only 35 to 40 rifles between them. With "no-one in the village to protect" they
withdrew to al Rama.
A meeting took place in Amman of various Arab leaders and their military
personnel. Intervention in Palestine by regular troops was discussed, in the light
of the inability of the Arab Liberation Army and Palestinian Arabs to cope with
Zionist threat.
Palestine Arab leaders warned on the Arab Liberation Radio "Certain
elements and Jewish agents are spreading defeatist news to create chaos and
panic among the peaceful population. Some cowards are deserting their houses,
villages or cities . . Zionist agents and corrupt cowards will be severely
punished."49
April 25
The mortaring of Jaffa continued, causing heavy casualties and accelerating the
exodus from the town. The Irgun claimed to have come face to face with British
troops, anti-tank guns being used by both sides. Haganah radio dismissed Irgun
complaints from the Zionists that some of their men had been surrounded, this
action being dubbed "unwarranted interference."
Arab resistance was reported. Roads were blocked and Zionist armoured
cars were mined. The village of Shufat continued to resist occupation. Haganah
attempts to cut off Jerusalem from Jericho failed.
The Jerusalem fire brigade which had been partitioned between the opposing
sides lost its Arab section. The engines were held up at Jaffa Gate and stolen.
Three Britons were killed when a troop train was derailed. A section of the
track had been removed. Another was shot dead by Arab assailants in the
middle of Jerusalem.
The last houses in the village of al Ghubayya al Tahta, near Haifa, were
demolished. It had been the scene of pitched battles with the Arab Liberation
Army.
On this date Operation Chametz (the "Passover cleaning") commenced with the
purpose, by the end of the month, of seizing all the villages connecting Jaffa to
the hinterland. One of the first to go was Beit Daja which was occupied by the
Alexandroni Brigade. The Haganah assisted by local settlers destroyed the
houses of Wadi al Hawarith, near Tulkarm, and other neighbouring villages
ensuring the return of the villagers to be "all but impossible."
Khirbat al Mansura, near Haifa, was attacked by the Haganah. No traces
remain of the village.
A small vessel was intercepted by the Royal Navy. Its 785 illegal Jewish
immigrants were off-loaded at Haifa and, within an hour, were being shipped to
Cyprus.
April 26
It was reported that the Transjordan government had declared war on
"Zionism". The armies of Syria, the Lebanon, Transjordan and Iraq signed an
agreement to join a three-front campaign to open before 1 May.
In an interview with King Abdullah the view was expressed that military
measures were the only options open to decide the situation in Palestine "since
the Jews had started warfare without waiting for May 15." The Jews, he said,
had already attacked peaceful Arab villages, Haifa, Jaffa and a great part of
Jerusalem. He had sent a message to the Jews urging them "to accept to live as
citizens in a Palestinian Arab State." He pointed out that he did not accept a
state of war in Palestine, only "inhuman attacks by Jews". Arabs, he felt, had
waited in vain for justice from the UN and now must safeguard their rights
themselves. He was prepared to try to implement any truce on "condition that
the status quo is restored in Tiberias and Haifa." In view of recent events, the
protection of Jerusalem, Bethlehem and Nazareth must be placed in the hands
of the Arabs. Referring to Russia and her satellites he concluded "Arab people
understand the truth, and will not be slaves to these States or their decisions." 51
A unit from the Transjordan army occupied Jericho - five miles from the
Palestine-Transjordan border.
The Irgun renewed their attack on Jaffa, the only remaining Arab port,
"according to plan". An Irgun spokes man said it was intended to capture the
whole of Jaffa and incorporate it within the Jewish State. By the end of the day,
much of Jaffa was still in Arab hands. Civilians were still fleeing, mostly to the
countryside to the southeast of the city. Parts of Tel-Aviv, controlled by the
Irgun, were shelled by mortars and light artillery. Unconfirmed Zionist sources
accused British troops in Jaffa of contributing to this attack.
Zionist attacks on Acre, on the northern coast of Palestine, were reported.
Schooners, armed with mortars, took part with shelling by Haganah forces
lasting five hours. Residents in the suburbs fled to the safety of the walls of the
old town.The attackers were driven of by the town's defenders. Later 140 Arab
prisoners from Acre prison escaped when mortar shells fell on the roof.
Arabs attacked Atarot and Lahavot and blocked off the road at Bab al Wad.
British light tanks intervened when Zionist forces, using mortars and heavy
machine guns, tried to capture the Arab village of Tira (famed for its olive oil
production), less than ten miles from Haifa. British troops helped evacuate the
women and children. In Haifa itself, bread was distributed to the "needy and
dispossessed" Arabs through a committee of leading local Arabs. Jewish
bakeries made the bread which was distributed free, according to reports,
through the Haganah.
In Jerusalem, a Haganah brigade under the command of Yitzhak Rabin,
captured the Sheikh Jarrah area. The Zionist forces were then forced out by
British troops because the area lay alongside British evacuation routes.
However an agreement was reached with the British commander that Sheikh
Jarrah would be returned once the British had departed. This agreement was
eventually honoured.
Yosef Weitz, of the Jewish National Fund and who sat on the Transfer
Committee which deliberated the fate of the Palestinian Arabs, recorded in his
diary that the northern part of Zevulun Valley was completely clear of Bedouin,
their shacks destroyed and their fields ploughed over. His published diary
omitted the comment recorded in his notebook at that time "We must be rid of
these blackmailers and parasites." The following day Weitz "ordered" kibbutzim
representatives "to finish the job within five days." A month later he was able to
record "there is almost no trace of those who had trespassed on our lands." 52
A Jewish illegal immigrant ship with a cargo of 600 Jews was intercepted by
the Royal Navy off Haifa. Egypt warned all shipping to stay out of territorial
waters along the 20 mile coastal strip of southern Palestine from 1 May.
When troops from the Suffolk Regiment pulled out of the Alemein Camp, near
Jerusalem the area was immediately occupied by Arab forces. This was
regarded as the largest British installation yet to fall into Arab hands.
Jamal Husseini, spokesman for the Arab Higher Committee, commented that it
was common knowledge that the Jewish Agency was buying huge quantities of
arms from the United States with a "certain South American republic" as an
intermediary. He also alleged that Zionist supporters were amassing in certain
Balkan ports ready for trans-shipment to Palestine for 16 May. "It is also
common knowledge that Jews and non-Jews have and are being trained in the
fine art of terrorism and sabotage in Poland and Russia for exhibition in
Palestine . ."51
Fawzi Kaukji alleged that three "Russian Battalions" had opposed his forces at
Mishmar Haemek. One Russian lieutenant-colonel had been killed in battle.
Another had been hanged by Arab fighters. Their ID papers had been sent to the
United Nations.
April 27
The British authorities gave instructions to the army to oppose the occupation
of Jaffa by the Zionists. The message from the District Governor of Lydda, Mr
W Fuller, was sent to the Mayor of Tel-Aviv, Israel Rokach. This coincided with
an Irgun report claiming progress in the continuing conflict in Jaffa.
Sir Alec Kirkbride, the British Minister in Amman, denied recent reports
that Transjordan forces had entered Jericho. Doubts about any Egyptian Army
support in Palestine continued with a Cairo newspaper reporting that the
Defence Ministry would "allow Army officers, NCOs and men to volunteer for
service in Palestine."
It was reported that Iraq has agreed full military cooperation. Up to 10 000
troops and 25 planes were said to be moving into Transjordan. Troops of King
Abdullah's Transjordan army were reported to have taken up position on both
sides of the Allenby Bridge over the Jordan river - the main link between
Transjordan and Palestine. A company of the Arab Legion, under British orders,
took up position in the Jericho area to ensure the road to Transjordan was kept
open. The Legion was active along the frontier following reports that the
Zionists were mobilizing about 1 000 men in the area. A Palestine Government
spokesman confirmed that the Arab Legion was under control of GOC British
Troops, and their conduct was not in question.
The Haganah, the Jewish "Defence Force" and the Irgun terrorist organisation
signed an agreement in Tel-Aviv for full cooperation in military operations
throughout Palestine. This ended a period of bitterness between the two
organisations.
It was reported that the Administration in Palestine was one of "disintegration
and indifference" with 24 hours to go until its virtual extinction. By then 100
officials from Jerusalem will have left, leaving only 20 together with fast
disappearing clerks and employees from all offices. In the past 24 hours two
Britons were killed, believed to be the victims of Arab attacks, with robbery the
motive. Today was the day that heads of government departments were drawing
cash for final payments from Barclays bank.
It was reported that all airline employees were preparing to quit Lydda Airport,
with British troops occupying all the buildings. Five looters were shot, one
dead, after troops followed orders to shoot at anyone touching equipment. The
Customs building was said to be on fire. Air France employees had left before
noon with KLM hoping to follow.
Zionist terrorists were in action with the manager and other officials from
Barclays Bank in Tel-Aviv being taken from their homes in the early hours and
forced to open the bank's vaults. It is believed that 100 terrorists were involved
in an operation which netted about 250,000. [Later reports placed the
responsibility on the Stern Gang who first "dealt with" the Haganah guard on
duty at the bank].
A large Jewish shop close to Allenby Square was wrecked by three
explosions. The previous day it had been occupied by armed Jews, with its Arab
employees vacating the premises.
Outside Jerusalem armed Zionists held up an armoured car. The attack
was foiled when a second armoured car arrived on the scene. One Zionist was
killed.
The military correspondent for The Scotsman gave an overview of the situation
from the military perspective:
The Haganah and the Irgun together command about 100 000 in arms compared
with the Arab opposition of about 20 000. The Zionists intend to hold the three
Palestinian seaports and thereby ensure a flow of munitions and recruits from
overseas - while blockading the Arabs. The first reinforcements would come
from some 30 000 illegal immigrants, young and able bodied, drilling and
training in internment camps in Cyprus.
Thereafter the the intention would be to seize control and fortify the main
road-centres such as Lydda-Ramleh, Jerusalem, Tulkarm, perhaps Nablus and
Jenin in the heart of the Arab hills. This would give themselves, and deny to the
Arabs, freedom of movement.
Arab strength lay outside Palestine with the armies and gendarmeries of Egypt
(latest reports indicated that mechanised units were on their way to the border
with two trains laden with soldiers departing to an "unknown destination"), Iraq
and the Lebanon - perhaps 120 000 men and 200 aircraft - with a safe bet that
not all of this number would be put into battle in view of the difficulties of
maintenance. A common plan of action by this mixed contingent was deemed
unlikely, with guerrilla warfare deemed the likely option.
By this point the British had withdrawn from the Negev in the south and Galilee
in the north with evacuation proceeding from Lydda and Sarafand. The key
points along the two main routes of Jerusalem-Nablus-Jenin- Haifa and
Tulkarm-Haifa would be held to the last in order to effect evacuation to Haifa.
A small perimeter will be held around Haifa harbour for final departure on 1
August.
April 28
With the assault on Jaffa by the Irgun into its fourth day, British forces
went into action. Tanks, artillery, mortars and cannon firing Spitfires tried
to break up the attack.
Reports indicated that the Arabs were weakening, with the Irgun
occupying Manshieh quarter and other parts of Jaffa to the north and west, in
their drive to the port area. Meanwhile the Haganah attacked from the south
into Jaffa's suburbs, capturing four villages en route.
The Spitfires directed their attention on the Irgun HQ from where artillery
fire had been directed against Jaffa. The troops concentrated their efforts on key
points within the city and the Tel Aviv boundary. The Jewish Agency said that
Jews do not wish to stay in Jaffa nor to disrupt the normal life of its people.
During the evening, the Irgun launched a second assault using explosives.
Row by row, blocks of houses were blown up creating panic among Arab
civilians. Within 24 hours they had reached the sea. Such terrorist actions led to
observations such as that of General Murray:
"I saw a scene which I never thought to see in my life. It was the sight of the
whole population of Jaffa pouring out on to the road carrying in their hands
whatever they could pick up. . . . . as fast as their legs could carry them. It was
a case of sheer terror."53
And even when it was apparent that the "cleansing" of Jaffa was being
successful, the ordeal was not over. As in Haifa, the terror stricken people were
targets for Zionist gunmen and snipers. "Those bullets went through the bodies
of people standing by the seashore" recalled 12 year old Iris Shammout. As they
filed into small boats in an effort to reach a Greek steamship which they hoped
would take them to safety, many people were drowned. Babies fell overboard
with mothers struggling to save them.54
It would have been around this time that the family of 11 year old Sabri
al-Banna fled their home town of Jaffa. The young boy would have experienced
the terror and trauma of Jaffa being "liberated" - to borrow a phrase much used
by the ardent Zionist of the day. He would not have known that the citrus
plantations and the citrus export business to Europe, owned by his father, were
to be lost to his family. That the family property was to be confiscated by the
Israeli government.
He also did not know that, one day, under the nom de guerre of Abu
Nidal, his name would be known world-wide as he translated the terrorist
tactics, witnessed during the cleansing of Jaffa, into a weapon against those he
perceived to be his enemy.
British troops re-occupied Lydda Airport. One British and three Arab constables
were killed by Zionists at their colony of Nahariya, north of Haifa.
Zionist sources claimed that the Arab Legion had been in action in the Katamon
area of Jerusalem.
The Haganah launched Operation Matate and Operation Yiftach to expel
Palestinians from eastern and central Galilee and to capture Safed. This was
followed by an attack on the town of Samakh, south of Tiberias. The residents
fled for safety. North of Safed, the Haganah attacked and occupied Biriya.
It was reported that hopes had risen for a truce over Jerusalem [when the UN
Trusteeship Council obtained Jewish and Arab agreement for a truce covering
the Old City], with the Jews, more than the Arabs, aware of the realities of their
situation. The former were fearful of the Arab Legion. Haganah units were
poised to take over key points in the city - the railway station, police HQ, post
office etc - once they were vacated by the British. In certain areas of Jerusalem
dwindling numbers of troops and police were trying to maintain a semblance of
order, if only to keep open the "evacuation routes." Elsewhere the Zionists were
almost completely in command.
Jerusalem was a city of desolation with no way of estimating how many
of its 165 000 inhabitants had fled. Large areas were dead and deserted, with
the tons of accumulated litter blowing about in the strong winds. Life returned
at night in the form of snipers operating from demolished buildings. There was
a feeling that the Battle of Jerusalem would not be long, with the Zionists
coming up trumps in so many of the recent engagements. The remnants of the
British community had started to move into the sanctuary (and hoped for safety)
of St George's Anglican Cathedral.
With the Katamon area of the city subject to weeks of heavy artillery
shelling, the Arab National Committee of Jerusalem ordered its local branches
to relocate women, children and elderly people from the area.
The Palestinian Arabs were reported to be leaderless - mainly due to the
tendency of the members of the Arab Higher Committee to fight the battle for
Palestine from Cairo, Damascus or Beirut. Little faith was put on Jamil
Husseini's statement that an Arab State would be declared on 16 May. King
Abdullah of Transjordan was seen to be the mainstay behind any possible
effective action.
Police and FBI raided a New York house and seized rifles, pistols, machine
guns, grenades, ammunition, knives and bayonets concealed in bags of clothing
and food destined for Palestine. Members of a young Zionist movement were
taken into custody.
April 29
The Zionist forces besieging and attacking Jaffa agreed to a ceasefire following
an ultimatum to the Jewish Agency. To reinforce their determination to strike at
Zionist targets if the Irgun and Haganah continued with their assault, a
formation of Spitfires flew overhead as truce negotiations proceeded. Although
the Irgun did not confirm the truce, their mortars fell silent at 4pm. It was later
agreed that the ceasefire would become operative as long as the Zionists did not
extend beyond the areas they had already captured in the northern part of the
city. On the south side of Jaffa, Arab forces recaptured two positions held by the
Zionists in Tel el Rish area. During the fighting with British troops when the
Irgun were forced back by tanks and infantry, 11 Zionists were known to have
been killed with 30 seriously wounded. Thirty Arabs were reported killed with
about 100 wounded.
The Irgun eventually broke the truce, shelling the city centre with heavy
mortar fire. British artillery returned the fire and broke through the Zionist land
blockade of Jaffa. Arab reports stated that Arab reinforcements had reached
Jaffa, including Iraqis with artillery. The Irgun claimed to be within 700 yards
of the port and to have taken 1 000 Arab prisoners.
During the previous evening 100 Arab prisoners escaped from Latrun detention
camp, assisted by the absence of most Arab warders from their post. In
Jerusalem there were only 20 senior officials, aided by a handful of local
employees, primarily concerned with winding up the affairs of the
Moshe Jewish quarter of the city. Arabs in a stolen Jewish bus, drove past,
firing into the area. This was accompanied by a mortar bombardment into the
same area by Arab forces positioned on the Old City's walls. In an effort to stop
the fighting, British troops fired two pounders into Yemin Moshe and laid a
smoke screen between the combatants. Earlier a police armoured car had
directed its fire at a Jewish house from which shots had been fired at a military
post overlooking Katamon.
Earlier the UN Truce Commission had refused to attempt to negotiate a
truce in Katamon, stating that their concern was to obtain a truce for the whole
country. However, as in Jaffa, the British authorities in Jerusalem decided to
intervene. District Commissioner, J H Pollock threatened "powerful military
intervention" if Zionist operations continued. The threat of using the RAF was
reported to have taken aback the Zionist authorities.
With over an estimated 20 000 Palestinian refugees fleeing to the Lebanon and
Syria in recent days, it was reported that truce talks continued between the
British military authorities and the Jews and Arabs in Jaffa. British troops were
ready to position themselves between opposing sides in Jaffa with the cease fire
terms stating that there should be no aggressive action from either side.
Unarmed Palestinians should be allowed to return to the area they had left.
Infringements would be dealt with, without prior warning, by the army.
In Haifa, it was reported that British troops were, once again, patrolling the
Arab areas.
Ben Gurion visiting Salama [pop. 6 730], near Jaffa, to inspect this recent
conquest, commented in his diary that he had found "only one old blind
woman."56 Two weeks earlier Zionist forces had blitzed Salama with mortar
fire.
The United States delegation at the UN proposed that a temporary trusteeship
for Jerusalem as a whole should be arranged. It found favour with the Jewish
Agency because, as proposed, it would save the Haganah the effort of keeping
the road from Jerusalem to the coast open. The Arab representative, in a
comment from The Times, "did not trouble to be polite about it."
The president of the Security Council read a telegram to the political
committee from the Palestine truce commission. It reported that the general
situation was deteriorating rapidly. The Jewish Agency was trying to provide
services to Jewish areas. The Palestinian Arabs relied upon municipal
authorities within the towns. Villages had no central authority. Camps and other
important areas vacated by the British became immediate battle grounds.
The Egyptian government reported to Arab newspapers that the United States
had begun to exercise some pressure on the Arab Governments and disapproved
of their determination to resort to armed intervention in Palestine.57
Notes
1 Benny Morris, Falsifying the Record,(Journal of Palestine Studies, Spring 1995) p.54
2 Norman Finkelstein, Myths, Old and New, (JoPS, Autumn 1991) p.88
3 Walter Laqueur, The Israel-Arab Reader, Israel and the Arab World 1948-67, p.185
4 Laqueur, p.188
5 Jon Kimche, Seven Fallen Pillars, p.216
6 David Hirst, The Gun and the Olive Branch, p.140
7 Michael Palumbo, The Palestinian Catastrophe, p.64-65
8 Kimche, p.224
9 Morris, p.55
10 Walid Khalidi, All that Remains, p.278
11 The Scotsman 3/4/48
12 Khalidi p.514
13 ibid p.142
14 The Scotsman 10/4/48
15 Khalidi, p.289
16 H Levin, Jerusalem Embattled, p.57
17 Palumbo, p.48
18 ibid p.50
19 ibid p.54
20 ibid p.55
21 Levin, p.66
22 Khalidi, p.534
23 The Times 12/4/48
24 Khalidi, p.143
25 Benny Morris, The birth of the Palestinian refugee problem, 1947-49, p.51
26 Khalidi, p.315
27 Finkelstein, p.78
28 The Scotsman 16/4/48
29 Khalidi, p.158
30 The Scotsman 16/4/48
31 Khalidi, p.63
32 The Scotsman 16/4/48
33 Khalidi, p.419
34 Palumbo, p.107-108
35 ibid p.63
36 The Scotsman 20/4/48
37 Khalidi, p.169
38 ibid p.169
39 Palumbo, p.65
40 The Times 22/4/48
41 Finkelstein, p.72
42 ibid p.87
43 Levin, p.87
44 The Scotsman 23/4/48
45 John C Trever, The untold story of Qumran p.100
46 Palumbo, p.109-110
47 The Scotsman 24/4/48
May
The destruction of the villages became a major political enterprise.
Benny Morris, Israeli historian
"By May 1948, the Palestinian fighting force consisted of four thousand
soldiers. These were joined during the first few months of 1948 by eight
thousand volunteers, mostly irregular Arab soldiers. . . .Palestinians made up
even less than one-tenth of the overall number of volunteers. . . . this indicates
that the Palestinian political leadership in fact governed no military power of
its own and that without outside Arab assistance in the form of regular armies
the Arabs of Palestine had absolutely no hope of achieving any significant
military gain against the Jews. Even with the volunteers, the Palestinian
fighting force numbered only 12 000, facing a Jewish force of 22 425 active
military personnel."1
For those regular armies of some of the Arab states, there was still no comparison with the Zionist war machine:
"We entered the war with so little preparation that there was no time to carry
out a general mobilisation. I had to hire twenty-one trucks from Palestinian
Arabs in order to haul my troops from Rafah up to Gaza, and I had to leave
some of my six-pounders behind for lack of tractors. The terrain was too
difficult to haul them behind our trucks. The officer in charge of the abandoned
six-pounders cried for shame, and there were tears in my eyes as well."2
With the media concentrating on events in Jerusalem, Jaffa, the United Nations
and the capitals of various Arab states it was left to researchers, historians and
diarists of the future to record events which happened elsewhere in Palestine.
The Chief Secretary of the Palestine Government, Sir Henry Gurney, was one
person who seemed to be unaware of the terror experienced by those Palestinian
civilians facing the Zionist onslaught when he compared the search for safety
and security with fleeing "rabbits." And cynically alleged that many of the
better-off Palestinians had "discovered urgent business in Beirut or Cairo."
In the time honoured fashion , certainly as far as the Palestinian
experience is concerned, of blaming the victims, he castigated assistance from
the Arab states as "ill-organised and stupid intervention." As if Zionist
aggression and expansionism, the variety of well planned military operations
which were soon to be come apparent, would never have materialised in the
absence of resistance.3
The coming weeks were to show how well the Zionists had planned for a state
"cleansed" of its indigenous population. They were to show how effective
the creation of terror and fear in a civilian population, firmly rooted in its
history, culture and land, was in dispossessing them of their birthright.
In the words of Israeli historian, Benny Morris:
"In conformity with Tochnit Dalet (Plan D), the Haganah's master plan . . . The
Haganah cleared various areas completely of Arab villages - the Jerusalem
corridor, the area round Mishmar Haemek, and the coastal plain. But in most
cases expulsion orders were unnecessary; the inhabitants had already fled, out
of fear or as a result of Jewish attack. In several areas Israeli commanders
successfully used psychological warfare ploys to obtain Arab evacuation (as in
the Hula Valley, in Upper Galilee, in May).4
Outside major urban centres "it was standard Haganah and IDF policy to round
up and expel the remaining villagers (usually old people, widows, cripples)
from sites already evacuated by most of their inhabitants."5
May was the month that the Zionist forces revisited many Palestinian villages perhaps attacked months or weeks earlier - to ensure that the local population
did not stay around.
As the fourteenth of May approached, and with the majority of the Arabs who
eventually became refugees still in situ, the full fury of the Zionist military
machine was unleashed. Palestinians who fled the field of attack, even if
lingering right outside their villages or towns until the terror abated, were
blocked from returning. Palestinians who lagged behind or failed to "get the
message" were generally expelled outright. The villages that were home to
these Palestinians were systematically destroyed.
Many Palestinian villages, deeply rooted in time and history, were razed to the
ground, part of the eventual Zionist propaganda onslaught to try and convince
the world that there was no such a place as Palestine, no such a people as
Palestinians. However, there was always the occasional Zionist with a
conscience who was prepared to put his thoughts into print. In early May,
Aharon Cohen, director of Mapam's [an early Zionist political party with a
Marxist outlook] Arab Department wrote that "A deliberate eviction [of the
Arabs] is taking place . . . Others may rejoice - I, as a socialist am ashamed
and afraid." A few days later he observed that " 'transfer' of the Arabs from the
area of the Jewish state" was being executed "out of certain political goals and
not only out of military necessity."6 He further added that the complete
destruction of villages was not always done because there were "no sufficient
forces to maintain a garrison."7
According to the analysis of Israeli historian, Benny Morris, it was in
early May that the destruction of Palestinian villages changed from being
primarily a military objective, to a political one. While he concedes that in some
areas other reasons for the destruction may have dominated (eg revenge), it was
during this month that the idea of permanently removing the Palestinians took
root.
"The destruction of the villages became a major political enterprise."8
The end of the British mandate over Palestine took place on Friday 14th.
During the weekend that followed there were claims from all sides with regards
to military conquests. It was only in the light of day that legitimate claims as
distinct from propaganda, could be discerned.
However, as was subsequently revealed, by mid-May there was no doubt
in some minds that the Palestinian refugees would not be returning. Yosef Weitz
of the Jewish National Fund, for one, was concerned over the fate of the
"abandoned" Palestinian land. which at that point amounted to some 75 000
acres.
His concern was two-fold. First of all there was some opposition within
the JNF directorate to any expropriation of Arab land. Secondly, any
expropriation, under whatever legal gloss, might not give custody of the land to
the JNF. Months later the government eventually agreed to give control of this
purloined land to the Fund. It gave the JNF the right to lease the land to
settlements or, at the very least, control over the Ministry of Agriculture's
leasing policy.
May 1
As part of Operation Yiftach the Palmach attacked and occupied the village of
Ein Zeitun [pop 820] to the north of Safad in Eastern Galilee. This was a village
with a long history of animosity towards the Zionist colonisers. It had strategic
value, in that any invader wanting to control Safad and the surrounding area had
to control Ein Zeitun.
The attack began at 3am with the usual mortar attack followed by a
ground assault with hand grenades. The Palmach rounded the villagers up and
threatened them with mass execution. Thirty seven teenage boys were selected
at random and taken captive. They were never seen again. The rest were
humiliated, stripped of their possessions and, with gun fire directed over their
heads, forced from their village into the surrounding area where their distressed
presence would be guaranteed to terrorise others.
Israeli historian, Benny Morris, reckoned that the captives were part of a
group later slaughtered two or three days later by order of Moshe Kelman, the
commander of the Palmach's Third Battalion. In anticipation of Red Cross visit,
he ordered the hands of the victims to be untied to conceal that the killing had
The Haganah were reported to have used heavy aircraft for the first time. Two
engined planes bombed Arab forces attacking Zionist settlements in Upper
Galilee.
The evacuation of Safad started today, following the capture of several nearby
villages by the Haganah. These villages included: Ein Zeitun, occupied the day
previously. The village houses were either blown up or burned, partly to terrify
the residents of Safad who could view the destruction from nearby hills. The
sight of this act had a demoralising effect in Safad and other villages in Eastern
Galilee.
The village of al Ja'una was partially evacuated. The villages of Mughr al
Khayt and Qabba'a and Fir'im were mortared during the night "in order that in
the end the Arabs would flee from them" according a military report on the
operation.12
Yosef Weitz, of the Jewish National Fund, recorded in his diary after observing,
at first hand, the results of the Haganah's actions in the Jezreel Valley
". . .the Arab villages [are] in ruins . . . the houses and huts are completely
destroyed ." The Arabs left "in a psychosis of fear."
Rather incredulously he added
"Village after village was abandoned in a panic that cannot be explained."13
Meanwhile, in Amman, a meeting of officials and notables from Haifa agreed
that their people should return to Haifa. In the following days, coordination
with the British to achieve this objective looked possible when the British army
removed Haganah road-blocks and moved into empty Arab neighbourhoods.14
Britain announced that she was sending considerable military reinforcements to
Palestine because of the deterioration in the situation. This was seen as
affirmation that Britain intended to take stringent measures to combat violence
during the last 13 days of the Mandate.
The announcement stated:
"Owing to the unwarranted aggression on the part of the Irgun Zvai Leumi in
Jaffa, the situation has seriously deteriorated during the past week. This theatre
has now assumed operational priority over some other commitments in the
Middle East. As a consequence, considerable reinforcements of infantry, tanks,
guns and Marine Commandos have had to be dispatched to Palestine in the
cause of general security."15
With the "get-tough" policy being directed mainly at the Zionists, a government
spokesman said there would be no hesitation in taking action against the Arab
forces should the need arise. Reports indicated that two companies of British
troops had landed at Jaffa, possibly the second such landing in 24 hours.
The Jewish Agency was not slow in protesting the slur directed at the
Irgun. Allegations were made of Arab aggression against Zionist positions in
the past few days, of Syrian and Lebanese army units active in attacking border
settlements in North Palestine. This was dismissed as "Jewish propaganda" after
the RAF had flown over the area and found no sign of fighting.
The Liverpool Regiment arrived from its previous duty of guarding illegal
Zionist immigrants in detention camps in Cyprus to the more arduous task of
keeping Lydda Airport open. They joined the Argyll and Sutherland
Highlanders already in position. It was regarded as imperative to keep the
airport open and give security to the Arab employees following the walk out of
Jewish members of staff and their sabotaging of communications equipment.
There were a variety of reports concerning Arab mobilisation in preparation for
an outright war after 15 May. At the forefront was King Abdullah and the Arab
Legion. Iraq dispatched troops to Transjordan, en route to Palestine.
Three plane loads of arms from France arrived for the Haganah.
The position of oil supplies in the Mediterranean area was the subject of
speculation and reporting. With the refinery in Haifa having closed down on 13
April following hostilities and the cessation of oils supplies from Iraq, it looked
as if the supply of refined oil would be a major determining factor as regards
the outcome of any war in Palestine.
Efforts to bring about a truce throughout Palestine continued. This would have
given the UN a start once the British mandate came to an end. The British were
concentrating their efforts on the Arab leader ship.The result was that the Arab
states felt that their intervention would come to late to
save the "Arab cause."
The Americans concentrated on the Zionists. The latter, flushed with their
successes, were reported not to be amenable to any approach.
May 3
Paradoxically, as preparation for war in Jerusalem was reported to be near its
final stages, the city had its most peaceful 24 hours for months. The city was
reported to resemble two fortified armed camps, with heavy barriers thrown up,
gun emplacements and road blocks guarding the entrances to the various
quarters. Both "camps" were filled with troops with reinforcements of various
Arab nationalities arriving daily.
Lieutenant-General Gordon MacMillan was reported in the New York
Post as saying that Britain would resist "with full force" any attempt by Arab
states to invade Palestine while the Mandate was still in force. All convicted
prisoners in Palestine, Arab and Jew, were at liberty following the withdrawal
of British prison personnel. HMS Newcastle was reported to be "demonstrating
off Jaffa". Two hundred lorries with British troops arrived in Southern Palestine
from the Suez Canal area.
Palestinian refugees continued to stream out of their homeland in search of
safety. At the Allenby Bridge over the River Jordan, the flow was temporarily
halted as Iraqi volunteers crossed over the bridge from Transjordan into
Palestine.
British troops patrolled Jaffa as the mass exodus continued. With only a few
thousand Arabs left, both Zionist and Arab combatants were warned of British
retaliatory shelling if hostilities were renewed.
Zionist colonists from Gush Etzion, south of Jerusalem, ambushed traffic on the
way to the city.
Arab forces carried out a mortar attack on the Zionist colony of Neve Yaacov.
Yosef Weitz of the Jewish National Fund was lobbied by local Jewish
representatives from the Jordan Valley who, now that their area had been
"emptied" of Arabs were keen that settlements should be established. They
demanded that settlements be established at Khirbet ad Duweir and As Samra
on the southern shore of the Sea of Galilee.
A Mr Rex Farran was killed when he opened a parcel, addressed to his brother,
Capt Roy Farran. The parcel bomb coincided with the anniversary date of the
disappearance of member of the terrorist Stern Gang, Alex Rubowitz. Captain
Farran had been charged with his murder, but acquitted. Since then the Stern
Gang had threatened to follow him "to the end of the world."
May 4
The cease fire in Katamon was still holding while talks, hopefully leading to a
truce, progressed. Fresh British troops arrived in Jerusalem to assist the
Highland Light Infantry who have been responsible for security in two of the
"hottest" areas in Jerusalem - the walled Old City with its warren of narrow
passages and caves and "no-mans land", Sheikh Jarrah quarter, with its nightly
fights to obtain possession.
The job of the HLI, since November, was seen to be one of preventing
some 25 000 Arabs from massacring 1 500 Jews.
Within Jerusalem life in the Jewish part was reported to be "fairly steady".
Men were to be seen in uniform and those without were questioned to account
for themselves. The Arab areas tend to be deserted but with no large scale
exodus evident.
Only a few thousand Palestinians remained in Jaffa, uncertain what to do, in the
full knowledge that the British would soon depart.
Heavy fighting was reported between Arab assailants and the Zionist defenders
of a Russian Orthodox monastery five miles south of Bethlehem. The Haganah
claimed to have killed 50 Arabs, knocked out 20 armoured cars, with eight of
their defenders killed.
The Irgun reported that Arab forces, allegedly the Arab Legion, had launched a
strong counter attack against Yehudia village, seized earlier by the Irgun. It was
suggested that this was part of a strategy to open up a route to Lydda Airport.
The village of 'Aqir to the south west of al Ramla was surrounded by an
estimated force of 400 Haganah troops of the Giv'ati Brigade. A demand was
made that all guns should be handed over with eight villagers taken hostage.
Following British intervention, the Brigade withdrew. However the incident
prompted the flow of 3 000 people from the village. Within weeks, the
remaining 30 or so villagers were expelled.
The Irgun occupied the village of Abbasiyah, near Jaffa. The Arab Legion,
operating under British command, shelled Gush Etzion in retaliation for the
previous day's ambush.
As part of Operation Matate (Broom), designed to "sweep" Palestinians
out of the area east of Safad and the Jordan River, the village of al Qud- ayriyya
was attacked by the Haganah and the residents expelled. The village probably
suffered immediate demolition. According to military sources, this Operation
had "tremendous psychological impact."
The village of al Zanghariyya and two others suffered the same fate. With
orders that they should be attacked and "their inhabitants expelled and their
houses blown up" the Palmach had an easy job. When they appeared, the
villagers fled towards Syria, such was the fear. The following day, sappers
methodically blew up fifty houses.16
The historical village of al Tabigha was occupied and partially destroyed by the
Haganah. A few villagers tried to return but, within a week, the activities of the
Haganah made it impossible. A neighbouring historical village, al Samakiyya
(close the site of Capernaum) was occupied and destroyed. Following a shell
and mortar attack by the Palmach, the village of 'Arab al-Shamalina [pop 650]
suffered a similar fate. The Operation Commander, Yigal Allon, commented
"We regarded it as imperative to cleanse the interior of the Galilee and create
Jewish territorial continuity in the whole of Upper Galilee."17
Operation Yiftah continued on its way, characterised by demolition of
conquered Arab villages as the entry in the Operations log book outlined
". . . at 9.00 o'clock the units reached their objectives as, on the way, they blow
up all the houses and burn all the bedouin tents."16
Yosef Weitz of the Jewish National Fund recorded in his notes, but omitted
from his published diary, his thoughts on the land owned by a mix of Jewish
and Palestinian Arab owners in Bet She'an (Baysan) Valley. The land was
coveted by the JNF. Weitz complained to the local Jewish leaders that "the
valley was still seething with enemies. I said. - the eviction [of the Arabs] from
the valley is the order of the day."18
King Abdullah of Transjordan called on "every man of strength and wisdom,
every young person of power and faith [from Palestine], who has left the
country, let him return to the dear spot." He thanked those who had remained
"in spite of the tyranny prevailing."14
May 5
The terrorist Stern Gang, which recently merged with the Haganah, was
responsible for carrying out an attack on a British military breakdown lorry two
miles south of the Jewish town of Nathanya. Forced to stop when its path was
blocked by a stolen armoured lorry, members of the Gang opened fire from an
adjacent orange grove. Six British soldiers, all members of the Royal Electrical
Mechanical Engineers, were found dead. Each had been shot through the head.
A spokesman said that they were "re-declaring war on the British" in retaliation
for new troops being sent to Palestine.
Despite optimistic truce talks, violence flared up again in Jerusalem, centred on
the Sheikh Jarrah area. The Arabs mortared St Simeon's Monastery, captured
the previous week by the Haganah. It commanded the south west suburbs of
Jerusalem.
About 600 villagers from al Tira, which had been attacked the previous month
(it had also been attacked by the Irgun on 12 December 1947 when 13 villagers,
including women and children, had been massacred), were evacuated to Jenin
and Nablus by the British. The Arab Liberation Army, under the command of
Michael Issa, withdrew from Jaffa. This marked the end of the city's resistance.
The Golani Brigade began a siege of the town of Beisan from which the
wealthy families had already fled. Informed opinion sympathised with those
who had already left since, it was the rich who had been politically active and
financed the purchase of arms to fight the Zionists. They would have been the
first victims of any reprisals under Zionist occupation.
The Mandate government announced, in an indirect attempt to encourage Arabs
to return to Haifa, "In the view of the Government the Arabs can feel completely
safe in Haifa."14
The UN Truce Commission returned empty handed after meeting Arab League
delegates in Jericho. The British High Commissioner was asked by the UN
Security Council to try and arrange terms between Arab and Jew in Jerusalem
for the implementation of the truce agreement.
The large movement of Palestinian refugees was reported to be causing
problems. In Gaza there was reported to be a lack of food. Some refugees
returned to Haifa following the reclamation of parts of the Arab areas, by
British troops, from the Zionists. It was felt that since Haifa would remain
under the British for some time to come, there was sufficient security to
encourage this inflow of exiles.
It was reported that, with the Zionist successes in Palestine, an
overbearing note had crept into Zionist pronouncements on the issue. Prolonged
discussion on the subject, as reported in The Times, was treated with scorn,
with many Jews obviously feeling that their destiny, and, perhaps, the final
answer for Palestine, lay in their hands alone.19
In the House of Commons, the Parliamentary Secretary for the Colonies gave
approximate numbers for those killed or wounded in Palestine between 1 May,
1947 and 24 April, 1948
Arabs : 1 300 killed and 2 500 wounded
Jews : 1 000 killed and 2 000 wounded
British subjects killed: Armed Forces 137
police 53
civilians 11
May 6
Safad, the main town in Upper Galilee was attacked by the Haganah. Almost
11 000 Arab residents had fled. It was reported that the leaders of the 3 000
strong Jewish community in the town had urged them to stay. This was the
culmination of Zionist attacks on neighbouring villages during the previous ten
days.
In general, the Zionists were steadily increasing their hold on south- ern
and eastern Galilee following the British evacuation to Haifa.
She had no problem with those who were deemed to be hostile to Zionist
ambition. It was those "friendly" villagers who had fled the fighting which
caused some soul-searching with regard to their intention to return to their
deserted villages.
In the end her call for the Mapai party to hold comprehensive discussions on the "Arab problem" was ignored.
May 7
Arab leaders agreed to a truce for Jerusalem, to commence the next day, "if the
Jews also cease fire." Later the Haganah agreed its adherence to the cease fire.
While no one was over-optimistic at the news, there was a tangible sense of
relief in the city. The main stumbling block was the road to Tel-Aviv. The
Zionists wanted it opened with the Arabs not inclined to agree to this
stipulation.
This was followed by a brief bout of fighting between the two side in the
Yemen Moshe section of the city. British troops and artillery opened up fire
with a six-pounder, two- pounders, machine guns and mortars in
heart of the city, to stop the fighting.
Reports made it clear that the Zionists had the apparatus of government already
functioning, or ready to function in eight days time. A Department of Justice
was opened in Tel-Aviv, with courts ready to operate under the control of the
Jewish National Administration. An Economic Department and Import and
Export Licensing Office had been established.
All in sharp contrast to Arab dominated areas. There was no political
unity nor central leadership. Local communities ran their own affairs, not made
any easier by the movement of about 200 000 Palestinian Arabs, one fifth of the
Palestinian nation, reckoned to be roaming about in the search of a safe haven,
whether this be in Palestine, the Lebanon, Syria or Transjordan.
A typhoid epidemic was reported in Acre, with outlying villages being infected,
possibly by fleeing refugees.
May 8
Firing ceased in Jerusalem as truce negotiations continued. Zionists took
control of the railway from Samakh to Haifa.
Operation Maccabi was launched for the conquest of the villages remaining
between Ramleh and Latrun. The village of Beit Mahsir was attacked.
May 9
In Jerusalem the cease fire which had been in place since the previous day was
reported to be holding. The Palestine Government said that it would agree to the
placing of Jerusalem under the protection of the Red Cross if both Arabs and
Jews made a formal request to the Red Cross. Effectively this would make
Jerusalem and "open city." It was reported that the Jewish Agency felt "piqued"
at the imposition of the ceasefire without prior consultation. Some
commentators felt that this was due to a feeling of "national pride", with the
mandate due to end in one week.
The Arabs were prepared to allow convoys into Jerusalem under the
supervision of a third party. For their part, the Zionists demanded right of access
along the whole road from Tel-Aviv to the Wailing Wall and the expulsion of all
those armed Arabs who came from outside Palestine, from the city. At this point
an inconsistency entered the arena. The Zionists would not agree that their
armed personnel should also leave the city, arguing that they would simply go
underground. Apparently this reasoning was not to be applied to the Arab
forces.
According to Zionist sources, the Palmach launched an attack on the Arab
held heights which dominate the Jerusalem Tel-Aviv highway near Bab el
Wad, 14 miles from the city.
The picture painted of Jaffa, until a few days previously the largest Arab city in
Palestine with a population of 90 000, was a sorry one. Under the UN partition
plan Jaffa was designated an Arab enclave in a Jewish state. However with Arab
gun posts deserted, a few score refugees boarding small coastal vessels ready to
take them to a destination unknown, only a few hundred Palestinians could be
seen wandering about their city, dazed, confused and impoverished. It was
estimated that only up to 3 000 Palestinians remained, all on the verge of
starvation.
At the French Hospital on Jaffa Hill, Catholic nuns cared for the sick,
wounded and orphans. British tanks and artillery were in place in the city.
Without them the Zionist forces could have walked in. However they were in no
rush. The British were due to leave in a few days. They concentrated their
efforts in neutralising any resistance on the Jaffa Jerusalem road.
With Jaffa in Zionist hands, this left Gaza as the only Palestinian sea port
of any stature. Meanwhile 16 large ocean going freighters had anchored off TelAviv ready to discharge thousands of tons of supplies to the emerging Zionist
state.
Under Operation Yiftach, the village of 'Akbara [pop 390] to the south of Safad,
was chosen by the Haganah as a target which was intended to help "soften-up"
the residents of Safad. Units of the Palmach's first Battalion attacked in order to
"create among the Arabs of Safad a feeling that they were about to be
surrounded and would be unable to flee . ."21 There were accusations that the
Al Tira, to the north east of al Ramla, was attacked. Its fate at this point was
unknown. However the ALA defenders reported that they had insufficient
ammunition to "wage battle."
During the night units of the Golani Brigade attacked al Ashrafiya [pop
230], part of Operation Gideon. The villagers fled to the safety of Transjordan.
The Haganah were reported as wasting no time before they started to blow up
the village houses. Likewise the neighbouring village of Farwana was captured
and completely destroyed.
Kfar Darom colony in the Negev was attacked by Egyptian irregulars.
Despite earlier reports that both sides to the undeclared war had agreed in
principle to a Red Cross plan to demilitarise Jerusalem and place the whole city
under its flag, the Jewish Agency issued a denial. Perhaps it was happy with
events as they were. On the same day the Agency informed the British that in
Katamon district the "listing, collection and removal of household goods is
being done in an organised manner . ." The British, however, noted that former
Arab residents saw their property being looted "Jewish trucks driving up, being
loaded with property being brought out of the houses and being driven off to an
unknown destination."
The Jewish Agency refused the British request that some residents be
allowed to return to reclaim their property, one of the excuses being that "the
removal of goods whose ownership is in doubt has not been completed . ."25
It was not long before these residents, from their refugee camps in East
Jerusalem, were able to observe Zionist immigrants moving into their homes.
The claim by former residents of Katamon that civilians had been killed by the
occupation forces was verified by the Red Cross. By using his nose (the
Haganah refused to give any assistance) a Red Cross doctor was led to a cave
where the stench of decaying flesh was so powerful that one medical orderly
collapsed. The sight was as bad as the smell with "A group of bodies . . piled in
a heap, including soldiers, women and even a mule." With the eventual
assistance of an American volunteer who was able to withstand the horror of the
massacre, two lorries were filled with decaying bodies.
The news travelled fast throughout the city. One YMCA official in
Jerusalem, A L Miller, observed that Arab morale was affected by this atrocity
and, with regard to the ongoing Palestinian exodus, noted "In my opinion the
atrocities were committed with this in view."25
It was agreed that a special mixed board of one Briton, one Arab and three Jews
would run Haifa after the mandate ended. At least three British port officials
stayed on.
Aharon Cohen of the Mapam Party completed a memo "Our Arab Policy in the
villages.
The villagers of al Buwaayziyya fled after hearing about events in Safad.
A request for an "agreement" with the Haganah was turned down. A similar
request from the villagers of al Khalisa was turned down. The village militia
remained until they were shelled from a nearby settlement as an armoured
Zionist column approached.
Weeks later returning villagers reported that their houses had been burned
and destroyed [Author's note: Two years later the settlement of Qityat Shemona
was built on the site. The now modern town includes a factory that makes Uzi
machine guns.]
The coastal village of al Bassa [pop 2 950, including 1 590 Christians] was
attacked by naval forces. Although most of the women and children had fled, in
anticipation of an attack, some remained. The village militia were taken by
surprise and retreated. Those remaining, mostly the elderly, were ordered to
gather outside the church. The Zionists took a few of the younger ones,
including at least one woman, and shot them dead. Thus suitably terrorised, the
remainder were ordered northwards. A few were later killed in a vain attempt to
salvage some of their belongings.
The Egyptian Senate approved a motion authorising the Egyptian army to join
forces with other Arab armies and enter Palestine "to restore stability and
prevent massacres."An allocation of 4 000 000 was made for this purpose. The
Egyptian contingent earmarked for service in Palestine was estimated at 15 000
men. Three air force squadrons were stationed at the frontier.
King Abdullah of Transjordan gave a press conference where he said that "War
is not being declared, relieving Palestine from the grip of Zionists is not war
against the Jews. The Jews have gained their strength because during 30 years
of British administration they have been arming. If the British did not assist
them they at least closed one eye. . . . . The Arabs did not arm in an organised
manner, therefore the Jews became stronger."
The schisms and enmity within the Arab alliance were revealed. He
accused the Arab Higher Committee of bringing "misery" to Palestine. Also
accused was the Syrian prime minister and his "Arab League collaborators" of
compelling the Palestinian Arabs to cooperate with the League.27 The Arab
"Liberation Army" was dissolved as was the Arab Higher Committee, a move
regarded as opening the way for Abdullah to don the mantle of saviour of Arab
Palestine.
It was reported that the Arab leaders feared that the Irgun may have success in
forcing on Jewish opinion their plan to expand a Jewish state to include not just
the whole of Palestine, but also Transjordan. This fear reflected the ideals and
Jews". During this same action, part of Operation Gideon, the Haganah
occupied three other villages, Ulam, Hadatha and Ma'dhar, and thus "the Lower
Galilee was emptied of its Arab inhabitants."
Operation Barak was launched to "open the way" to the Negev. The villages of
Bureir, Huleikat and Kawkabah were occupied as well as neighbouring villages
in Gaza district.
Burayr, to the east of Gaza, was occupied by the Haganah. Bashshit, described
as a "strong Arab centre" was also occupied by the Haganah. The village of al
Hamidiyya was deserted by its residents "under the influence of the exodus
from the town of Beisan and under pressure from the Haganah." It was later
demolished following pressure from neighbouring Zionist settlements. During
Operation Gideon, when the Golani Brigade swept through the entire Baysan
valley, the village of al Sakhina was taken. No physical evidence remains of the
village with the entire area now agricultural land.
Sirin, to the north of Beisan, was occupied. The History of the Haganah
states that "the inhabitants fled in fear of the Jews. And Jewish Lower Galilee
became empty of Arabs."Likewise the villagers of Ma'dhar, southeast of Haifa,
"fled in fear of the Jews" when it was overrun by the Golani Brigade. In the
same area, the village of Khubbayza was occupied by the Irgun. Many of the
residents were incarcerated behind barbed wire for days, before being forcibly
expelled. It is unclear when it was demolished however, some villages in the
vicinity were razed following occupation, others by the Jewish National Fund in
1948.
Troops from the Arab Legion were reported to have attacked the cluster of
settlements at Kfar Etzion, five miles south east of Bethlehem. Armoured cars
and light artillery were used.
One Zionist was killed and several wounded following a clash with a British
armoured car on the Haifa Tel-Aviv road. The Irgun warned that retaliation
would be taken immediately if British troops "interfere or attack our soldiers
during the British evacuation."
The Zionist mobilisation authorities in Palestine broadcast an urgent
appeal to all ex-Servicmen hitherto exempt from military service to report
immediately for duty. A state of emergency was declared in the Arab
countries with all able-bodied Palestinian males refused entry.
Airlifts of arms arrived in Palestine, from Czechoslovakia, destined for the
Haganah. There were 5 000 rifles, 1 200 machine guns and 6 million rounds of
ammunition.
In Damascus, Arab League officials declared that the League would establish an
Arab civil administration in Palestine after 15 May. The League's secretarygeneral, Azzam Pasha, said the decision was reached after the League's political
committee and the Arab war council defeated a proposal to establish a Palestine
Arab State similar to the one the Zionists were expected to launch at the end of
the mandate.
The Scotsman's special correspondent reported on the role of the Arab Legion
in Palestine. There would be no "D-Day" when they would be expected to
march in to the country. Those already there would stay at the request of local
Palestinians who were afraid of further massacres. Reinforcements of the
Legion were expected over the next few days and would be based in Jericho
where a Transjordan flag was already flying over the police station and post
office.
An interview with an officer of the Legion gave an insight into the
thinking and strategies to come. They were anxious not to attack Jewish towns
and settlements nor any part of the intended Jewish State."I hope we learned
something from the sad mistakes of the Liberation Army. We Arabs are good at
fighting in open country but have no experience of street fighting, and our
enthusiastic young soldiers must be taught not to try and attack heavily fortified
Jewish positions, with rifles as their sole weapons.
The Arab Legion's morale was high with the greatest concern of the
senior officers being to protect Arab towns such as Hebron and Nablus which
had specifically appealed to King Abdullah for help. Stress was laid in
maintaining lines of communication "That is why we will not rush to the coast."
Any operations would not be aimed at the Jewish State. But, should the
Haganah try to carry out any of the recent wild threats, attack or bomb
Transjordan, then the situation would change. Transjordan would invoke her
treaty with Britain, which obliged the latter to come to her assistance.
May 13
With one report that the Haganah had obtained 600 "bombing planes" stationed
in Italy, many of the Arab capitals took precautions. Egypt proclaimed a state of
siege, anti-aircraft guns were at the ready and "suspects" put into a former
British internment camp. Troops were ready to enter Palestine one minute after
midnight on the 14th. In Syria the expectation was that a new 12-member
coalition would be formed to give unanimity to future actions. Air raid
precaution drill were carried out in Damascus. Tanks and armoured vehicles
were observed moving south. Likewise in Iraq and Transjordan troops were on
the move with Arab Legion mechanised units heading towards the Allenby
Bridge across the River Jordan.
The Colonial Office and Foreign Office issued the following statement:
"Eighty-four thousand troops, who received no cooperation from the Jewish
community, proved insufficient to maintain law and order in the face of a
campaign of terrorism waged by highly organised Jewish forces equip- ped
with all the weapons of the modern infantryman. Since the war 338 British
subjects have been killed in Palestine, while the military forces there have cost
the British tax-payer 100 million. Although British responsibility for Palestine
has ceased, it is the earnest hope of His Majesty's Government that, as both
sides come to realise the tragic consequences of trying to conquer Palestine by
force, some compromise may yet be possible which will prevent the destruction
of all that has been achieved during the last 30 years and which will enable the
people of Palestine to live at peace and govern themselves. To that end the
Government are still pre- pared to give every assistance in their power, short of
imposing by force a solution not acceptable to both peoples."29
The Haganah announced that the Arab Legion, with heavy artillery and
armoured vehicles, had penetrated the Kfar Etzion group of settlements near
Hebron. One of the four settlements was captured.
The Arab Liberation Army reported the death or injury of 800 Zionists at Bab el
Wad. Their commander-in-chief had been killed, three armoured squadrons
destroyed.
Al Batani al Sharqi, northeast of Gaza, was occupied by the Gi'vati Brigade.
The village houses were eventually demolished. The villagers of nearby Najd
were expelled by the Palmach's Negev Brigade.
In December 1947, the villagers of Kafr Saba, identified as the Roman Caphar
Saba, met with Jewish community leaders when a joint pledge to keep the peace
was made. However the Haganah decided that it should be "emptied" of its
Arab population. The attack on 13 May was the second in three days, with
resistance being met on both occasions. It is likely that the villagers fled or
were expelled shortly after.
Another historical village, al Zib, north of Acre, with roots back to the 18th
century BC and mentioned in chronicles stretching over 2 000 years, was one of
the main villages targeted by the Haganah as part of Operation Ben Ami. Most
villagers fled during a mortar barrage. Moshe Carmel, the commander of the
operation, ordered that the village be razed to the ground to "punish" the
villagers and to ensure "they could never return."
The Haganah attacked and occupied the villages of Aqir, Katra, Bashit, Beit
Daras and Barqah in Ramleh district. They attacked the hamlets on the slopes of
Mount Carmel and occupied the village of Kafr Saba. The village of Tireh, near
Qalqilyah, repulsed an attack. The latter also repulsed a later attack. The
Haganah were ordered to occupy all the Palestinian villages on the coastal plain
near Tulkarm.
With the signing of an Arab-Jewish agreement, imposed by the victor, Jaffa
became a Jewish controlled port. All Arab arms and ammunition had to be
handed over to the Haganah. There was an estimated 4 000 Palestinians left in
the city. The Zionists now controlled all important coastal points except Haifa
and Gaza.
Jerusalem was reported to have been without water for three days. Supplies
were unlikely to be re-connected until the fighting ended. Apparently the
Zionists blew up a section of the pipeline, by accident, at Bab el Wad.
It was announced in the House of Commons that the Political Committee of the
Arab League accepted the truce proposals for Jerusalem. A reply was still
awaited from the Jewish Agency. An American Quaker, Mr Harold Evans, was
chosen by the UN as municipal commissioner in Jerusalem. Count Folke
Bernadotte was appointed by the UN as mediator in Palestine.
An Irgun-Haganah agreement was signed for the conquest of the whole of
Palestine. Fifty artillery pieces and 24 heavy mortars arrived at Haifa destined
for the Haganah.
The British notified the Jewish Agency that the Arab Legion of Trans- jordan
was no longer under British command.
May 14
Operation "Pitchfork" (described variously as Klashon, Kilshon and Schfifon)
was launched to occupy Jerusalem's strategic areas, those evacuated by the
British and Palestinian residential quarters outside the Old City. In coordination
with the Haganah, the British handed over the huge central compound
containing the city's vital installations.
With the departure of the British from Jerusalem steady firing could be
heard. However the Zionists now controlled the central area including the
police station, leaving the city cut in two, from Damascus Gate to Princess
Mary Avenue.
Fifty two years were to pass before the Palestinian oral tradition of a little
known massacre at the village of al Tantura, near Haifa, was confirmed by a
young Israeli historian, Teddy Katz. Other sources put the date of the massacre
as 22-23 May, perhaps a reflection of the Zionist practice of attacking on one
date and "finishing off" at a later date.
Iraq proclaimed martial law, by Royal decree. Four military commanders were
appointed. The Lebanese government promulgated an emergency law enabling
special security measures to be taken. King Abdullah of Transjordan proclaimed
that with the ending of the mandate "the Balfour Declaration has disappeared."
Partition and trusteeship had been rejected by the Arabs, there was therefore no basis "for the claim to independence by the Jewish community in
Palestine." In Egypt 10 000 troops were ready to cross into Southern Palestine
and put "an end to massacres perpetrated by terrorist Zionist gangs against
humanity."
At midnight, amid some pomp and ceremony lasting 10 minutes - including a
few farewell word to the Jewish mayor and Arab deputy mayor of Haifa- the
High Commissioner, General Sir Alan Cunningham, sailed for Britain. There
were no reported demonstrations.
The withdrawal of Britain from Palestine was compared, by some, with
"abandonment":
"Withdrawing without a successor, the British had not so much transferred
power as abandoned it. The United Nations, caught up in red tape and politics,
had intended to send out a secretariat to take over essential services, but only a
handful of officials were actually on the ground, and it was finally armed Arabs
and Jews who stepped into the vacuum, grimly battling for strategic advantage
even as the last British troops departed."32
Dr Lester, Director of Medical Services, observed "When the end came on 14
May one felt a feeling of relief at leaving Palestine with a whole skin, a feeling
of disappointment at the collapse of a fine service, and a feeling of shame at
leaving the Arab hospital staff in Jerusalem to wave their Red Cross flags at the
lines of armed Jews drawn up to take the zone. So the British left Palestine."33
Despite the fact that the new state owed so much to Britain, there was no hint of
thanks from foreign minister, Moshe Shertok.
With Haifa, its chief port and source of revenue, still in British hands.
With a group of Zionist colonies being occupied, the previous day, by the Arab
Legion under nominal British command, he was in a bitter mood. He asked the
British to explain their involvement in the latter event. The US came in for
criticism because they had tried to find a way out of forming the new state. He
said that the Jews would not compromise even to suit the United States. "One
does not commit suicide to gain a friend." he commented.31
May 15/16
At midnight on Friday, troops of the Arab Legion and the Iraqi Army crossed
the Palestine frontier. The former crossed by the Allenby Bridge, the Iraqis at a
point further north, Jisr el Majami, using a pontoon bridge to replace the
existing one blown up by the Zionists. At the same time the forces from Egypt,
Lebanon and Syria entered Palestine at predetermined points.
Reports indicated that the Egyptians had engaged the Israeli forces 40 miles
from Tel-Aviv, the newly proclaimed Israeli capital, and were moving along the
coast road under artillery and mortar fire, with the fortified Zionist colonies en
route providing resistance. Spitfires of the Egyptian Royal Air Force divebombed Tel-Aviv's harbour. A total of eight such attacks since Friday were
recorded, with the Haganah claiming to have shot down two planes.
Communiques from the warring parties made various claims. Iraqi forces
captured Rutherberga power installations, some ten miles south of the Sea of
Galilee. Israeli sources acknowledged that they had been captured by the Arab
Legion on the 15th. Iraqi forces occupied the village of Kawkab al Hawa. They
held it for three days with the loss of 23 men. The village was subsequently
destroyed, but the local Crusader castle, Bevoir castle, was retained (and
developed into a tourist attraction).
The Arab Legion reported that Kfar Etzion along with four other colonies
near Jerusalem had surrendered. Three hundred prisoners were taken, including
86 women and children. The latter were sent to the Red Cross in Jerusalem, the
rest were interned in PoW camps. Transjordan troops were reported to have
occupied Jericho.
Lydda airfield and the adjoining Kalandiya Colony were reported to be in
the hands of the "Liberation Army." Syrian troops claimed to have occupied a
former British army camp near Samakh, settlers had been driven from three
settlements. Nuqeib on the Sea of Galilee was encircled, and the Syrian airforce
had raided several others in support of the advancing Lebanese army.
The Lebanese army recaptured the two Lebanese villages, Malkiya and
Qadas, captured earlier by the Haganah. In the case of the former, Zionist
paratroopers were reported to have engaged the Lebanese who, according to
Haganah sources, suffered 200 fatalities.
The Haganah, as part of Operation Ben Ami, besieged the Arab seaport of Acre,
north of Haifa. Under the partition plan, Acre was apportioned to the intended
Arab state.They claimed to have captured the strategic village of Deir Ayoub on
the Tel-Aviv Jerusalem road together with the Christian village of Latrun, a
former detention camp for Zionists. The Giv'ati Brigade captured the village of
al Maghar.
Haganah units received orders to strike at villages inland from Haifa in
order to "clear" the area of its residents and establish an alternative route for
Haganah convoys going south. Villages such as Umm al Zinat and Khirbat
Qumbaza (an ancient Cannanite village, Karitah - Joshua 21:34) stood in their
way. The Haganah also claimed that the Egyptians bombed an RAF temporary
airfield wounding eight Britons. They also machine gunned a British armoured
unit on the Hebron- Rafah road.
Heavy fighting was reported in Jerusalem with Arab forces shelling the Jewish
quarters of the Old City. The Israelis launched an attack on Arab positions,
particularly in the area of Jaffa Gate. The Zionists resorted to their loud speaker
vans, urging the Arabs to surrender, and claiming that they had surrounded the
Old City.
In West Jerusalem, the district of Baq'a fell under Israeli control
"There was no resistance of any sort; they just walked in . . . Nearly every
house was empty: set tables with plates of unfinished food indicated that the
occupants had fled in disarray, haste, and fear."34
With the Haganah and the Irgun now united as one army, Jaffa - earmarked as
an Arab enclave under the partition resolution - was under Israeli military
command. Menachen Begin, Commander of the terrorist Irgun, made his first
public appearance. In a "fiery speech" he said that the Irgun accepted the state
of Israel within its present frontiers. However there was every indication that
the terrorists would continue their activities outside the yet-to-be-defined
frontiers of the Jewish state.
Moshe Shertok, took issue with Britain, claiming that her rule was still
effective in the Middle East. The Arab Legion, was officered and led by
Britons, with finance coming from Britain, he alleged. The promise that the
Legion would leave Palestine before the end of the Mandate had not been kept.
His fire was also directed at the Arab League which, he claimed, was an
instrument of British influence in the Middle East.
His one consolation was that the U.S. "after many hesitations, fears, and
suspicions" had recognised the state of Israel. This recognition (followed by
Guatemala then Sweden) was enthusiastically welcomed as giving a strong
bargaining point when it came to eventual talks with the Arab states.
In Italy, among thousands of Jews in special camps, letters were received
from the Haganah appealing for volunteers to enrol in "defence of the new
State". The Irgun asked for gifts of gold to help finance arms purchases.
Dr Chaim Weizmann, one of those responsible for the securing of the Balfour
Declaration in 1917, and former president of the World Zionist Organisation,
was elected president of the provisional council of the State of Israel.
May 17
Tel -Aviv continued to be subject to bombing and strafing raids by Spitfires.
Some small calibre bombs hit the city, with direct hits recorded on oil facilities,
others landed in the sea as the merchant ships moored in the vicinity moved out
to sea to escape the bombardment. About a dozen Jews were killed in the raids
with a number wounded. Despite a Red Cross on the roof, it was reported that a
hospital was repeatedly strafed with some fatalities. This was denied by
Egyptian sources. Six aircraft were destroyed on Tel-Aviv airfield.
The Shemen settlement was bombed with fuel tanks, ammunition dumps
and military supplies destroyed.
Israeli planes dropped incendiary bombs on the police station in the village of al
Nabi Yusha, while ground forces blasted their way through the village's
defences. The defenders withdrew and it is probable that the villagers fled or
were expelled at this time.
Forces from the various Arab states continued to attack Zionist positions,
concentrating on mainly Arab areas. In the south of the country, five colonies
were were shelled and besieged by two Egyptian divisions driving up from the
Negev. These attacks were repeated in the north by Syrian and Lebanese forces.
In the west the Transjordan Frontier Force, reported to be flush with fresh
supplies and ammunition to last them to the end of the year, was approaching
the Jordan Valley with Jerusalem in its sights. The Red Cross had evacuated
some 150 women and children from Kfar Etzion.
Heavy fighting was reported at the Jaffa and Damascus Gates of Jerus- alem,
with the Jewish Quarter of the city still being heavily shelled. The Haganah
reported that their position in the Old City and the German colony, Baka, and
Mousrara, had improved.
The settlers of Neve Jaacov were forced to evacuate the colony following
an assault by the Arab Legion. All were brought out safely, but had heavily
mined the houses and roads. A bomb disposal unit composed of British
volunteers spear-headed the entry and made harmless mines manufactured from
biscuit tins, milk churns and pipes. One member of the squad was killed and
one wounded while disarming the mines. Once the settlement was accessible,
about 100 neighbouring Arab villagers poured in, looting everything which
could be moved - including doors, window frames and roof timbers. Reports
indicated that loot was not the only motive. Neve Jaacov and the adjacent
settlement of Ataroth were symbolic, the first Zionist colonies in Palestine to
fall into the hands of the irregulars
With the abandonment of Neve Jaacov and the flight of the settlers from
Ataroth colony, near Kalandia Airport, the Arabs were in complete control of
Zionist deaths were reported. The Syrian communique reported the shooting
down of an Israeli plane and added that "the enemy is resisting strongly." Syrian
troops recaptured Samakh following a four hour battle, and occupied the Zionist
colonies of Shaar Hagolan and Masada. The Zionists revisited Samakh during
the night, inflicted heavy losses on the Syrian defenders, but failed to capture
the village.
Iraqi troops were reported to have crossed the River Jordan and captured the
Zionist colony of Geshar, south of the Sea of Galilee. In the north, the ancient
crusader port of Acre finally succumbed to the Zionist onslaught. Surrender
terms included the handing over of all arms and about 4 000 foreign Arab
troops to the Haganah. The latter claimed to have drowned up to 500 Iraqi
soldiers, south of Lake Tiberias, when they bogged down tanks and other
equipment by opening a dam near Daganya.
The village of al Batani al Gharbi, north of Gaza, and three others were
occupied as part of Operation Barak. It was reckoned that most of the
inhabitants had fled before or during the attack. Some were possibly expelled,
according to Israeli historian, Benny Morris.
Members of the Sde Nechemya kibbutz wrote to the Agricultural Centre asking
for over 400 acres of land belonging to the neighbouring village of al 'Abisiya
[pop 1 510 including 290 Jews]. The village was not occupied until 25 May.36
Acre was captured by the Haganah. While the newspapers barely commented
on this conquest of an Arab port that was intended, under the partition plan, to
be given to the Palestinian Arabs, detail which subsequently emerged deserve a
mention.
Its Arab population of 25 000 had almost been doubled by refugees from
outlying areas seeking safety. These people were then subjected to a mortar
bombardment which wreaked havoc amongst the refugees who lacked shelter.
The water supply was cut off, coinciding with an outbreak of typhoid.
Psychological warfare in various forms including the inevitable loudspeaker
vans with their messages of death and destruction were used.
So successful were these methods that by the time the Zionists entered
Acre, there were only about 4 000 left out of the initial 50 000. Those remaining
were then subjected to a reign of terror.
Several months later a UN observer, Lieutenant Petite, arrived in Acre to
investigate reports of maltreatment. His report confirmed this. Looting was
being conducted in a systematic manner by the Haganah - furniture, clothes and
any other item that could be used by the incoming Zionist colonisers. He
observed that the looting was similar to that taking place all over the new state,
all part of "a Jewish plan to prevent the return of refugees."
May 19
The Scotsman correspondent, Lovett Edward, toured Acre and the villages in
Western Upper Galilee. Until the fall of Acre the villages and the resort of
Nahariya had been almost completely cut-off, relying on their own resources or
the occasional drop of petrol or oil delivered by air.
Along the main road to Lebanon and then parallel to the Lebanese border,
within sniping distance, there was not one Lebanese soldier to be seen or heard.
Local settlers claimed that the Lebanese had retreated behind the hills. Nahariya
was described as "spick and span" and undamaged.
The villages most damaged, following intense fighting, were Assumeria
and Zib. The residents had either fled for safety or remained, where they were
given identity cards by the Zionist occupiers. Colonies within a mile of the
Lebanese border were being turned into strongholds in anticipation of further
hostilities.
In Acre, prisoners were being sorted out - local Palestinian Arabs from
foreign ones. The correspondent reported the distinct impression that not only
were the Zionists more technically advanced but "the more sincere, determined
fighters."
In Jerusalem and its environs, the Arab Legion was reported to be advancing
with heavy guns and armoured cars into northern districts of the city, according
to government sources in Amman. The Sheikh Jarrah quarter was reported to be
clear of Zionist forces with "the Jews flying in panic, with heavy losses, outside
the Old City." The Zionists sustained heavy losses following Legion attacks on
Kufr Saba and Abugosh. Artouf settlement was evacuated by its residents.
It was estimated that some 8 000 Haganah, Irgun and Stern Gang
members faced the Arab Legion, possibly holding out hope to the besieged
Zionist forces in the Old City who, on several occasions, turned down the
opportunity to surrender.With the loss of Sheikh Jarrah to the Arab Legion, the
Jewish university and Hadassah hospital were isolated, with Ramallah road
once again being open to the Arab population.
Haganah communiques earlier reported that Zionist forces had fought their way
into the Old City to link up with the besieged 1 300 Jews. Two British officers,
it was claimed, were captured, together with their arms, by the Haganah when
they captured Zion Hill. The Zionists claimed to have captured the huge former
army base at Sarafand between Lydda and Tel- Aviv. According to the Haganah
"The outpost fell into our hands without any casualties." The local villagers
probably fled or were evicted at the same time. The Zionists had agreed to pay
Britain $2.5 million for the base. By capturing it, this sum of money was saved.
The fortified Arab village of al Kubeiba, between Rehovoth and Yavneh,
also fell to the Zionists.
from the shelling littered the streets. With the exception of a limited telephone
service, municipal services had ground to a halt. A Transjordan communique
said that Arab guns landed a direct hit on an ammunition dump in the "new
city", at the former Palestine police depot. The Zionist forces in the Sanhedria
quarter, adjacent to Sheikh Jarrah, were shelled as they prepared to counterattack. Heavy losses were inflicted with the Zionists being dispersed.
The Arab Legion suffered a reverse when four of its armoured cars were
knocked out by a single two-pounder gun, from a Haganah armoured car, as
they made a first attempt to advance to the west off the Nablus road. The
Legion conducted mopping-up operations at Samakh and then pushed their way
to the colonies of Dakonia and Bikania. Heavy resistance was met, and heavy
casualties inflicted upon the enemy.
Al Kabri, to the north of Acre, was occupied by Zionist forces. An unknown
number of villagers were taken captive, some were killed. Others were killed
during their dispersal throughout Galilee when their killers found that they
originated from al Kabri [See: March 28] Moshe Carmel (Zalizky), commander
of the Carmeli Brigade had previously issued an order to his battalion
"To attack in order to conquer, to kill among the men, to destroy and burn the
villages of al Kabri, Umm al Faraj and An Nahr."40
Michael Palumbo, in his book The Palestinian Catastrophe gives an account of
one villager from al Kabri. Amina Moussa and her husband fled the village as
the Zionists approached. Shortly after they were captured by the Haganah.
Amina's jewellery was stolen by one soldier who taunted her that the necklace
would be given to the soldier's girlfriend. With the help of a collaborator, the
Zionists identified Amina's husband and five other captives as being from
Kabri. The next time she saw her husband he was lying dead with a bullet in the
back of his head.41
Umm Faraj and al Nahr were captured in accordance with the orders.
There is no record of the villagers' fate however, the villages were demolished
by the Haganah "both to punish the villagers . . . and to make sure villagers
could and would never return."42
Arab al Safa and al Ghazzawiyya were taken by the Golani Brigade who,
it was stated in the History of the Haganah, "cleansed the entire Beisan valley
of bedouins."43
The Egyptians reported on a two pronged attack from their base in Beit
Hanoun with one prong occupying the mainly Arab town of Beersheba and the
other following a ten hour battle at Beit Seneid to the north of Gaza. The latter
was used by the Zionists as a main supply and dispersal centre for men, arms
May 21
The battle for the Old City of Jerusalem was reported to be near its end.
Arab irregulars stormed past the Haganah defences, taking the Western or
Wailing Wall. The Old City shook to the vibrations of demolition charges as the
Arab forces dynamited into the Jewish quarter of the Old City in order to seal
the entrances of the underground tunnels from which the Haganah and Irgun
made their last stand.
The Jewish quarter was reported to be turning into a mass of rubble.
Zionist positions in and around the great central Tifret Synagogue, a few
hundred yards from the Wailing wall were also demolished. Despite frantic
resistance from the Zionist defenders, based in the rabbit-warren of tunnels
under the Old City, Arab irregulars with the help of covering fire from the Arab
Legion fought their way into the domed synagogue. Arab artillery and bombing
squads began to demolish the building, shrouding it in thick clouds of smoke
and dust.
When the Arab Legion artillery began to shell the Hadassah hospital and
Hebrew University on Mount Scopus, the American Consul was reported to
have asked the Legion to stop this action. The Legion commander declined,
pointing out that some 400 Zionists fighters were entrenched in the buildings
from where, despite repeated requests for them to stop, they continuously
mortared and machine gunned the Sheikh Jarrah quarter. The Consul was
handed surrender terms to convey to the Zionists.
At this juncture the Arab position, as articulated by the commander of the
irregulars, was "We gave the Jews many chances to surrender but they have
refused and now it is a fight to the finish." The Zionist position was given by a
senior Haganah officer "The Arab aim in the Jerusalem battle is not merely to
clear the roads for strategic purposes. It is the capture of the whole city. We
shall fight it out."44
Jewish prisoners were reported as saying that many Jews trapped in the
Old City want to surrender but the "Irgun have taken over command and the
quarter will be destroyed."It was reported that the terrorist groups, the Irgun and
Stern Gang still maintain their independence. Irgun members held up the Jewish
owned Eden Hotel, and took blankets and sheets.
During the night a 1 000 strong Zionist force tried to penetrate Zion Gate
to relieve the Jewish quarter but were beaten back. Unidentified air- craft flew
over north Jerusalem during the night and dropped six bombs.
Reports indicated that the Arab Legion was attacking Jerusalem on
three fronts, north, south and east with Zionist troops on the western side
fighting fiercely to prevent encirclement. While Arab morale was reported to be
high, that of the Jews in the "new city" was believed to be at breaking point
according to Arab sources. With shells crashing into buildings and streets, the
100 000 Jews concentrated in the area were desperately looking for food and
May 22
The US Consul in Jerusalem,Thomas Wasson, was shot dead by a sniper's bullet
as he was returning from a Truce Commission meeting. Both sides blamed each
other for the murder.
A cease fire ultimatum was issued by the Security Council, as a result of a
British proposal. It was stated that the Zionist forces were prepared to honour
this if the Arab forces did likewise. The Zionist enthusiasm for the cease-fire
was put down to two reasons. They were in virtual control of all the area
allotted to them under the partition resolution. A cease-fire would bring military
and political activities to a standstill. It was felt this would be to the advantage
of the Zionists. In addition, compliance would be viewed favourably by the
U.S. This, together with an Arab refusal, would make it easier for the U.S. to lift
its arms embargo on the Middle East.
Meanwhile Egyptian and Transjordan forces were said to have linked up
two miles to the south of Jerusalem.
The fishing village of al Tantura (built on the ruins of a Canaanite town, Dur,
mentioned as far back as 13th century BC) to the south of Haifa, was attacked
and captured by the Alexandroni Brigade. Israeli historian, Benny Morris,
makes it clear that the aim was to empty the village of its residents, with some
clearly being expelled.
This "some" amounted to 1 200, expelled to nearby al Furaydis.
By summer most had been expelled from Israeli held territory, apart from 200,
mostly women and children with relatives in Israeli detention. Some Israeli
officials apparently expressed concern at these 200 Palestinian
civilians, forced to sleep in the open and short of clothes.45 Their fate was never
recorded. [The site of the village is now an Israeli recreational area].
Fifty two years were to pass before the full details of what transpired at al
Tantura was revealed. Despite the testimony of Palestinian oral tradition, which
had always been ignored, the world had to wait for Israeli historian, Teddy
Katz, to publish his dissertation for the University of Haifa.
Evidence was uncovered of the slaughter of as many as 200 Palestinians,
about one eighth of the village population. It followed the killing of 14 soldiers
of the Third Battalion of the Haganah's Alexandroni Brigade by village
defenders. In what was described by eyewitnesses as "summary execution",
successive groups of village men were lined up against the cemetry wall and
shot. The slaughter only ceased when a settler from the nearby settlement of
Zichron Ya'akov arrived and threatened to shoot himself if it did not stop.
Other accounts talk of an attack from the sea, on three sides of the village,
with dawn revealing corpses of the village defenders lying about the village
streets. The bodies were then dumped in the one spot with the women and
children of the village forced to view the dead bodies of their husbands, fathers
and brothers. These accounts confirm the shooting of selected groups of men in
revenge for the deaths of some of the Zionist attackers.
Nearby is the Israeli resort of Dur. One of the parking areas used by
visitors to the resort is the site of three mass graves, the last resting place of
scores of victims. Village survivors, who were children at the time, still
remember the names of butchered family members, can recite street names,
point out where the boys and girls schools used to be and the glass factory
where 52 men were massacred
Part of the village was subsequently bulldozed with Kibbutz Nachsholim
established on village land.46
As from this date, the British refused all Transjordan pleas for ammunition with
which to supply an increasingly desperate Arab Legion.
May 23
The Old City of Jerusalem continued to be shelled by Arab forces. The
1 000 or so Jews rejected yet another demand for unconditional surrender,
vowing to make a last stand in the catacombs. In the New City, in the western
part of Jerusalem, 100 000 Jews were running out of food and water. Arab guns
concentrated on the Tel-Aviv road repelled any attempts at relief. A Jewish
Agency spokesman said "We are not over-optimistic, but we are confident,
confident that if our imports of arms by sea continue we shall be able to win."
The Arab Legion was reported to have entered the Zionist colony of Ramat
Rachel in Jerusalem's suburbs. They claimed that Zionist forces in the south of
the city were completely encircled.
The Egyptian airforce bombed petrol depots and industrial targets in the
south east of Tel-Aviv. Direct hits were recorded on ammunition lorries at
Ramleh airfield. A train was destroyed north of Nathanya.
A communique from Cairo described an Egyptian attack on a British
airfield within the security zone in Haifa as a "mistake." The attack on Ramat
David airfield claimed the lives of four RAF men, with six wounded. Five
Egyptian Spitfires were lost following British retaliatory action.
Arab forces claimed to have repulsed an attack on Samakh. The Zionists issued
a counter-claim saying they had repulsed an attack. It was reported that the
Lebanese forces had withdrawn from the conflict. Apparently they only
intended to carry out defensive operations in the event of a Zionist advance into
Lebanon.
The Times had very little to say concerning events, on the ground, in Palestine.
It was more concerned with the deliberations of various Zionists and their
perceptions of British aid to the Arab Legion.
The chief Rabbi of Palestine, Isaac Herzog, accused Britain of financing
assaults on civilian populations, of financing the destruction of various
historical and holy places. In America, Zionist rabbis in their sermons in the
synagogue, were openly political. They exhorted the U.S. to lift its arms
embargo. In newspaper adverts they urged the U.S. to cease giving economic
aid to Britain until she stopped sending "arms to Arabs."
The Board of Deputies of British Jews in a resolution which expressed its
appreciation of the part played by the British people in establishing a "Jewish
national home" and bringing to an end the alleged "2 000 years of wandering
and homelessness" made no mention of this aSpect of British involvement that
vexed so many supporters of Zionism elsewhere.
The Arab League pointed out that the Zionists had refused earlier truce
proposals because they wanted to seize all Jerusalem after the British left. The
recognition of Israel by "certain Powers" had made the situation worse, the
Zionists had become less compromising and the Arabs were determined to fight
on.
The Times made an interesting comment on the position of the U.S., stating that
although it was difficult to find any official prepared to defend the White House
policy on Palestine, the President's reliance on "extremist advisers" would seem
bound to lead him and the world into further trouble.
This comment was illustrated by the American letter of protest to the
Lebanon regarding the Lebanese holding of American citizens, of arms bearing
age, on their way to Palestine. The note of protest introduced anti-Semitism into
the incident when it said "The Governments of other countries do not
discriminate against the bearers of American passports on the grounds of race,
colour or creed."
May 24
With the Arab League and its forces feeling that thing were going "smoothly",
with any cease-fire adversely affecting their organisation and pursuit of
objectives, the decision was taken to ignore the cease-fire. An Arab condition
for any cease-fire was stated to be that all Haganah personnel without
Palestinian nationality should be expelled from Palestine.
An Egyptian army communique stated that Egyptian forces had stormed the
"Zionist fortress" of Deir Suneid, eight miles from Gaza. This followed a nine
hour battle where the enemy "suffered a great number of dead, wounded, and
captured" with insignificant losses to themselves. The Zionist casualties were
25 000 000. He seemed to think that his appeal, together with that for a lifting
of the arms embargo on Israel, was not in vain. The money was wanted for
arms, reconstruction work, and to finance the entry of 15 000 displaced persons
per month into Palestine.
He castigated the British for "undoing the work of Richard Coeur de
Lion" by "leading" Arab armies into Jerusalem. He said that Israeli forces were
prepared to leave Jaffa and Acre as soon as hostilities ceased. Jerusalem was
different, although not allotted to Jews under the partition resolution, they felt
the city was theirs.
With the cease-fire being postponed for 48 hours, Zionist sources
expressed their astonishment. The Arab League's support for a cease-fire was
reported to contain three conditions: Dissolution of all Zionist groups in
Palestine; complete ending of immigration; non-recognition by Arabs of the
Jewish State.
The Zionist pocket in the Old City was reported to have been split in two by the
Arab Legion. The majority of the Haganah-Irgun had retreated in and around
the ruins of the great "Hurva"Synagogue. The Jewish Agency were informed by
the Red Cross that the synagogue would be demolished unless the Zionist
forces withdrew.
Operation Ben-Nun was launched to gain control of the road to
Jerusalem. The newly formed Sheva' Brigade and the Alexandroni Brigade were
repulsed at al Latrun after a 24 hour battle with the Arab Legion. An official
Arab communique said the Zionists had been "exterminated" with 600 fatal
casualties. Large quantities of arms were captured.
An official Egyptian communique claimed that the strategic village of
Irak Soueidan, a key communication centre for settlements in southern
Palestine, had been captured. Army patrols attacked Zionist convoys and
armour heading south, forcing them to retire.
The villages of al Dawwara (the site of one of the most copious spring
wells in all of Palestine), al Abisiyya and Mallaha, all in the vicinity of Safad,
were evacuated either as a direct result of military assault or psychological
warfare in the closing stages of Operation Yiftach. [The area was converted into
a fish hatchery.]47
The Haganah claimed that the entire Jordan Valley had been cleansed of
"enemy forces."
The Scotsman included a report on Jaffa. While observing that Tel-Aviv is
bulging with a new "intense generation of khaki-clad youngsters" just across the
road there is a five minute walk from "life into death." Of Jaffa's once bustling
70 000 there remain about 4 000. Once again, in the mould of blaming the
victim, there is the comment that the rich fled first followed by the poorer as
they supposedly "packed up" and fled in panic.
Now there is a Jewish District Commissioner and military commander.
Streets are empty. Houses shuttered and decayed. Shops gutted and smashed.
Barbed wire cuts off whole areas. Mines lie about in overgrown gardens. House
fronts are pock-marked, the pavements bear star-shaped scars where the many
mortar bombs fell.
The paternalistic DC alleged little looting had taken place (Author's note:
eyewitness accounts tell otherwise). He had no idea when the refugees would
return. There is the occasional sound of a small explosion, described as "casual
fire" by the Zionists. In an Irgun controlled area, the terrorists were loading
"chintzes" on to a truck. Palestinians can be seen walking home with small
packets. The overall impression is a vast, empty, snail-shell of a city.
The Austrian office of the Jewish Agency called upon all able bodied Jewish
men and women in the displaced persons' camp of the U.S zone of Austria to
volunteer for the Israeli armed forces. The response was reported to be strong.
In Germany, all Jews between the ages of 17 and 35 were being registered for
service in the Israeli army, according to a Haganah representative in Berlin.
May 26
Concern was expressed by Arab representatives at the UN that the campaign
aimed at lifting the US arms embargo was a mere smokescreen. In private, well
informed Zionists concurred. Israel was already receiving 'planes, tanks, antitank guns, large calibre field artillery. These were arriving in increasing
numbers with Soviet bloc countries thought to be responsible for some of the
imports.
The Arab League, while expressing concern that it would be viewed as
being the aggressor for rejecting the Security Council's cease-fire order, pointed
out "It was not the Arabs who built pill-boxes and fortified 'settlements', who
smuggled arms and built up a Hagana. But they are now being made the
defendants."
The U.S State Department, through Mr Marshall, made it clear that American
recognition of the new state was confined to the boundaries set by the UN
partition plan. He refused to answer a question as to the difference, in the State
Depts' view, between the presence of Jewish troops in Jaffa and Arab troops in
Jerusalem.
The bombardment of Notre Dame and surrounding buildings in Jerusalem was
said to be under the control of a British major and other British officers. Within
the Jewish part of the city queues formed at water points. Bread rationing was
also introduced to ensure that the fighters had enough to eat. In an air-drop,
food containers targeted for Jews fell into the hands of the Arab residents of the
Old City.
In line with the Jewish Agency accusations, the suffering non-combatants
blamed the British for all their woes. Typified by a comment from the Palestine
Post "The Arab attackers are fighting wildly at the the whim of Bevin and his
Transjordan ally" However it was reported that regardless of the fact that
Jerusalem is outwith their boundaries, a city with international status, the
Zionists regarded the battle for Jerusalem as the battle for their new state. With
the Egyptians expected to join up with the Arab Legion, one last push by the
Haganah to raise the siege was expected.
Reuters reported that fresh Zionist forces had arrived in Jerusalem from TelAviv. Both sides were using 'planes with the Arabs bombing Zionist strongholds
in the city and the Haganah bombing the Hebron area and capturing Ramat
Bridge. The battle for Latrun was renewed with the Arab Legion claiming many
Zionists dead. Zionist sources described this battle as "the heaviest in
Palestine." The Transjordan Defence Ministry announced that the Latrun
casualty figure was close to 800 Zionists killed. A Zionist stronghold near Abu
Ghosh, a former radar station, had been captured.
Fir'in [pop 740] east of Safad was evacuated following an Israeli military
attack.
May 27
While gunners and demolition squads of the Arab Legion pressed hard on the
dwindling perimeter of the ruins of the Hurva Synagogue which sheltered the
remnants of the Zionist defenders, King Abdullah of Transjordan, commander
in chief of the Arab armies in Palestine, drove through the walled ramparts of
Jerusalem. He visited and prayed at the Omar mosque, visited the Church of the
Holy Sepulchre and the grave of his father, King Hussein.
By noon the Arab flag was flying over the Hurva Synagogue with the
Legion commander saying that it would be spared further destruction because it
contained no more Zionist gun-posts.
A Haganah broadcast said that the battle for Latrun and Bab el Wad was
fiercer than previously. A major Haganah attack was carried out on the large
Arab town of Majdal, north of Gaza, where buildings housing Egyptian forces
were destroyed. Reports said that the Zionist forces went into attack with ropes
attached - to make recovery easier in the event of death or injury.
Once again, out of the media spotlight, the Zionist forces were entrenching
themselves.
Al Samiriyya, southwest of Baysan, was evacuated following an assault
The Syrian delegate pointed out that it was easy for the Zionists to accept an
unconditional cease-fire, they had already carved out their state. At the same
meeting, hints of Zionist involvement in germ warfare was revealed. Two
Zionist prisoners admitted that they carried out orders to poison wells used by
the Egyptian army with typhoid and dysentry germs. The Jewish Agency
representative found it convenient to dismiss this allegation as "An anti-Semitic
libel."49
May 28
The news was dominated by the surrender of the Zionist forces who had been
holding out in the Jewish Quarter of the Old City of Jerusalem. Between 1 500
and 1 600 Jews including members of the Irgun and Stern Gang surrendered to
the Arab Legion after an onslaught lasting 12 days. About 300 (other reports
said 2 000) women, children and old men were turned over to the International
Red Cross. Younger men were to be placed in an internment camp "outside
Palestine."
With the exception of Sheikh Jarrah, which was quickly encircled by the
Arab Legion, the New City was under control of the Zionists.
The village of Zir'in (identified with the Canaanite town of Yizre'el, Joshua
17:16) was occupied by the 4th Battalion of the Golani brigade. The Brigade's
orders, issued on 19 April read "With the capture of Zir'in, most of the village's
houses must be destroyed while [some houses] should be left intact for
accommodation and defence."
Beit Jiz, southeast of al Ramla, was occupied by the Sheva' Brigade during
Operation Ben-Nun. This enabled the Israeli forces to establish an alternative
supply route to Jerusalem, bypassing al Latrun.
The New York Times reported that Associated Press correspondents who toured
the north and east with Israeli forces observed an area "swept almost virtually
clear" of its Palestinian Arab population by an operation called "The Broom."
Claims and counter-claims emanated from both sides with regard to the ongoing
battle at Latrun, on the road to Tel-Aviv. It was stated that the Zionists were of
the opinion that not only was this battle crucial for the immediate future of
Jerusalem but could determine the future role of the Arab Legion in Palestine.
Iraqi bombers were shot down over Latrun and over the Jordan Valley.
The proposal was made to Foreign Minister Shertok that a Transfer Committee
be appointed. It was reported that Shertok agreed that the "momentum of [Arab
flight] must be exploited and turned into an accomplished fact."50
May 29
A new cease-fire order calling for a four week truce while the UN further
discussed events in Palestine was passed by the Security Council. Its provisions
included: No arms to be taken into Palestine or the Arab States within the next
month; cessation of entry of fighting men into Palestine and Arab League
States; Jews of military age introduced to Palestine during the month not to
receive military training.
Al Muharraqa, east of Gaza, was captured by the Palmach's Negev Brigade. At
Nuris, northeast of Jenin, the village was captured and the villagers expelled by
the Golani Brigade. On the Lebanese border the village of al Malikiyya, to the
north of Safad, fell to Haganah troops disguised as Lebanese reinforcements
"with the exception of the enemy dead, a large quantity of ammunition, and a
number of French mortars, nothing remained in place."50
May 30
The Irgun officially broadcasted an appeal to Russia asking for help to
"liquidate Arab-British aggression." Britain, in collusion with the US State
Department, was accused of pushing through the Security Council a resolution
which, in the eyes of the Irgun, prevented Zionist reinforcements from reaching
Palestine while opening avenues favourable to Arab reinforcements. This was
reference to the new cease-fire order.
In Jerusalem about 1 000 Jewish non-combatants were taken to empty hotels in
the Katamon district, captured by Zionists two weeks previously. About 350
prisoners were taken to Transjordan with a further 150 wound- ed being treated
in the Old City. An estimated 200 Zionist were unaccounted for, presumed
dead.
Zionist resistance appeared stiffen over the weekend. Success was
claimed in capturing Jerusalem's water supply station at Ras el Ein from an
Iraqi force. On the Lebanese border the Israeli army captured an army camp at
Malakieh village together with the neighbouring village of Kadis, following the
destruction of Lebanese armoured cars and trucks.
The village of Kawfakha, to the east of Gaza was captured by the Negev
Brigade. Although the villagers "earlier repeatedly asked to surrender, accept
Jewish rule and be allowed to stay . ." they were driven out of their village, their
request was denied. The official reason given was that such requests were
always "either insincere or unreliable."52
Al Mazar, northeast of Jenin was captured by the Fourth Battalion of the Golani
Brigade. The Zionists then went on to attack Jenin itself, with no success.
The Israeli government claimed to have a copy of Arab Legion orders outlining
the bombing, shelling and use of gas on the New City of Jerusalem. Meanwhile
it was reported that all officers seconded from the British army to the Arab
Legion were to be withdrawn from Palestine by mid- night. Transjordan forces
were reported to have reached Lydda-Ramleh , 13 miles from Tel-Aviv. The
Egyptians captured Isdud, 28 miles south of Tel-Aviv. Extensive air operations
were reported with raids on settlements and Tel-Aviv's coastal defences.
The Scotsman's correspondent in Amman gave a resume of the Arab position on
the four week cease-fire proposals. Egypt and Iraq suspected the proposals
while the other states tended towards a qualified acceptance. All Arab states
supported the belief that the Zionist intention was to gain all of Palestine and
Transjordan, citing the assault on Jerusalem, Acre and Jaffa, even before the
end of the mandate.
Some Arab states felt that acceptance of the cease-fire, as Britain (as their
sole friend amongst the major powers) had appealed for them to do, would be
proof of their "good intentions" and would help negate Zionist propaganda. The
general tendency was to regard the U.S. as the Arab's bitterest enemy. Zionist
violence was attributed to American "encouragement and intervention."
May 31
The Arab League met in Amman to discuss the British proposals for a truce in
Palestine. It was considered that the Arabs faced a dilemma. Domestic public
opinion, bolstered by over-optimistic and exaggerated reporting felt that victory
was round the corner, wanted the conflict to continue. The reality was that if the
Arab side rejected the truce prposals, the arms embargo on the Zionists would
be cancelled and one would be imposed on the Arab states.
In Cairo, the Egyptian prime minister was optimistic about the cease fire
being accepted. He considered that events had changed in favour of the Arabs.
Count Folke Bernadotte, the UN appointed mediator left Cairo for Tel Aviv, for
his first contact with the Zionists.
Officials of the Christian Union of Palestine issued a draft document accusing
the Zionist armed forces in the Holy City of violating churches, convents and
religious institutions by using them as bases for military operations. Eight
religious buildings had been occupied, 14 churches, convents and other
property, including the Church of the Holy Sepulchre had been damaged. Three
priests had been killed, two wounded and hundreds of children, women and
combatants killed "since the Jews began the attack".
Zionist attacks continued between Haifa and Jenin with latter regarded as the
target, in view of the fact that the British withdrawal could be completed during
June. Zionist fighter planes were active in northern Palestine and in the Ramleh
area, attacking Arab communications. Air and artillery operations were carried
out against Arab-held Lydda, near the large airport. Arab attempts to recapture
Lajjun village were repulsed.
In the Latrun area, an attack by Zionist forces was halted by the Arab
Legion. Reports indicated that the attackers left 114 dead with much military
equipment, arms and ammunition captured or destroyed. Egyptian land forces
were reported to be "mopping up" to the south of Tel-Aviv with bombers and
fighter planes raiding the fortified Rehovoth, dropping high explosives and
incendiary bombs.
The village of Huj [pop 1 040 including 230 Jews] to the east of Gaza was
occupied by the Golani Brigade who then ordered the villagers to leave their
homes. Many Zionist officials considered the village to be "friendly" but was
officially viewed as "unreliable", being near the front- line with the Egyptian
army. Once the villagers were expelled, to the west, their homes were looted
and blown up.
Israeli historian, Benny Morris, regarded the debate which subsequently
centred on the refugees created by these expulsions as a clear statement of
Israeli determination not to allow Palestinian refugees to return to their
homeland.53
Notes
1 Ilan Pappe, The Making of the Arab-Israeli Conflict 1947-51, p.65
2 Mohammed Neigub, Egypt's Destiny, p.20
3 AJ Sherman, Mandate Days, p.238
4 Nur Masalha, A Critique of Benny Morris, p.95 (Journal of Palestine Studies, Autumn 1991)
5 Norman Finkelstein, Myths, Old and New, p.71 (JoPS, Autumn 1991)
6 ibid p.80
7 Masalha, p.181
8 Benny Morris, The birth of the Palestinian refugee problem, 1947-49, p.160
9 Walid Khalidi, All that Remains, p.437
10 Nathan Krystall, The De-Arabisation of West Jerusalem 1947-50,(JoPS, Winter 1998) p.11
11 Michael Palumbo, The Palestinian Catastrophe, p.76
12 Khalidi, p.450
13 Finkelstein, p.79
14 Morris, p.134
15 The Scotsman 2/5/48
16 Khalidi, p.507
17 ibid p.455
18 Benny Morris, Falsifying the Record, (JoPS, Spring 1995) p.47
19 The Times 6/5/48
20 Benny Morris, The birth of the Palestinian refugee problem, 1947-49, p.132
21 Khalidi, p.429
22 Palumbo, p.113-114
23 Khalidi, p.429
24 Walid Khalidi, Plan Dalet,Journal of Palestine Studies, 1987 , p.18 (JoPS, Autumn 1988)
25 Palumbo, p. 100
26 Benny Morris, Refabricating 1948, (JoPS, Winter 1998) p.88
June
By their past encouragement of the terrorists, whom they secretly
supported whilst publicly denouncing them, the Jewish leaders have created a
Frankenstein which will eventually cause them far more trouble than it ever
caused the British.
Clare Hollingworth, Special Correspondent, The Scotsman
The Israeli Defence Forces intelligence service produced a report entitled "The
Emigration of the Arabs of Palestine 1/12/47 to 1/6/48"1. This was the period of
time by which about half of the eventual Palestinian refugees had fled their
homeland. Three main reasons were given as to why about 391 000 Palestinian
had departed in such haste.
1]
2]
The knock-on effect of the Zionist military actions against Palest- inian
population centres . In particular, the fall of large towns or villages.
3]
crops evolved into a set policy to demoralise villagers, adversely affect them
economically and perhaps induce the villagers to leave their land. Previously,
the destruction of fields and crops had been a Haganah strategy for retaliation
and collective punishment following Arab attacks. It was now used as a tactic
for separating the Palestinian peasant, both physically and psychologically,
from his land.
The various brigades were constantly reminded to use small arms to
prevent Palestinians from reaping their crops. In inaccessible areas it was the
practice to burn the crops in order to prevent harvesting.
And the flow of refugees continued. During the First Truce, which commenced
10 June, the Greek vice consul in Jerusalem, C X Mavrides, recorded the
images in his diary of the "chain" of refugees from the Old City seeking refuge
in surrounding towns and villages.
The streets were filled with porters, pack-animals, women, children and
the elderly, all of them carrying something under the burning June sun. As the
four week truce drew to a close the chain of people and animals grew denser by
the day.
June 1
Both parties to the conflict cabled the Security Council indicating their
willingness to comply with the Council's request for a four week truce in
Palestine.
Various claims were made by the parties to the conflict.
The Iraqis claimed to be within nine miles of Tel Aviv, Kalkilieh had been taken
by their forces, as had the settlement of Kfar qa Sim. In cooperation with Arab
irregulars, they recaptured the main water pumping station of Ras el Ein which
supplied Jerusalem
The Egyptians attacked all Zionist colonies on the coast between Tel-Aviv and
Isdud. Syrian planes attacked Naharia, sinking two anchored ships.
The Israeli army claimed to have penetrated the flank of an Egyptian army
column up to 5 000 strong, near Yibna. The previous day's bombing of Amman
killed at least 12 Arabs, with King Abdullah's palace being a target.
Records show that, as part of Operation Barak, the 1 420 villagers of al
Nabi Rubin, west of al Ramla were expelled.8
An Israeli spokesman issued a statement confirming the Zionist military
position over the past two weeks. It claimed that in addition to the whole of the
territory of Israel which was free of "invaders", 400 square miles outside this
territory had been seized in "operations of active defence". The whole of the
Galilee was controlled by Israeli forces as was the coastal plain from the
Lebanese border to south of Isdud.
In Jerusalem, the bombardment of the "new city" continued, with the occasional
lull. The Arab Legion informed the Red Cross of its intention to shell the
Hebrew University area in response to mortar fire from the University which
had hit its forward positions in Sheikh Jarrah. No supply column had reached
the city for seven weeks, causing severe shortages. It was reckoned that the
gunners of the Arab Legion were becoming more accurate and deadly through
experience. Since the start of the bombardment, 1 400 people had been killed or
injured.
The last Jew to be evacuated from the Old City was reported, in The
Scotsman, to have been surprised by the "agreeably fair treatment" that he and
other evacuees had received at the hands of their captors, the Arab Legion. The
newspaper's correspondent in Jerusalem gave a revealing assessment of the
conduct of the Zionists in the Jewish controlled "new city."
Comparing it with a cleaner Berlin in August 1939, she pondered as to
why the Jewish administration copied Germany in its method of government.
There was suppression of freedom of speech and action, curtailing of civil
liberties. In a comment reminiscent of current practices in the occupied West
Bank and Gaza Strip, "security"is given as the usual excuse. All unpleasant
orders are accompanied by the "security" catch-all.
The dominant force in the country, the Haganah, remained almost
underground with no badges indicating rank on their uniforms. The Haganah's
commanding officer in the city was nameless, as were all senior officers. The
terrorist groups were increasingly regarded as "good Jewish organisations" with
many Jewish police and government officials now coming out of the closet and
proudly proclaiming their membership of the terrorist gangs.
However as it became increasingly harder to impose law and order in the
"new city" the tone changed. The Jewish Agency and the Haganah blamed
"dissident groups" who had "let down" the fighting forces. The Irgun, now
popularly called the "Etzel" began to throw its weight around. The
correspondent pointed out that the Jewish Agency knew exactly the
composition of the terrorists and could have apprehended them if they had so
wished.
The fruits of this policy of ignoring and effectively supporting the
terrorists started to show. "Appalling lawlessness in Jerusalem and other
Jewish towns" was reported. The "Jewish Frankenstein" contributed to weaknesses in Jewish morale, it was claimed. This morale was particularly high
amongst the richer classes. However it was this group that was targeted by the
Irgun and the Stern Gang with no protection offered from the official bodies.
The report concluded "Irgun is in fact becoming the 'SS' of the new State. There
all licenses for the export of war materials to Egypt, Iraq, Palestine, Transjordan, Syria, Lebanon, Saudi Arabia and Yemen. In response to a US
Congressional committee set up to establish if Britain was using aid from the
Marshall Aid plan to assist Arab armies, Britain responded that she had yet to
receive any such aid.
The UN mediator, Count Bernadotte, was given the freedom by the Security
Council to interpret the Palestine truce terms, the setting up of controls, as he
saw fit. This was in response to disputes which had arisen bet- ween the warring
sides. Britain regarded the cease fire order for Palestine as giving justification
to her continuing policy of not allowing Zionist male immigrants of military
age to leave the detention camps in Cyprus (where many received military or
para-military training).
This issue of Zionist immigration resulted in the quick termination of a
debate in the Security Council. Jamal Bey Husseini, for the Arab Higher
Committee said that if the truce terms meant continued Jewish immigration, the
truce would not be maintained. Arabs would be unable to bear the sight of
young militant Jews pouring into the country. For Israel, Mr Eban said that men
of military age "can and will enter."
During the short debate, Husseini pointed out that if the Jews wanted the
Arabs to withdraw from Jerusalem they themselves could withdraw from the
Arab cities they occupied. If they wanted something done for the Jews in
Jerusalem, they on their side should do something about the Arabs, 300 000 of
them, who had been driven from their homes.
Following a day of many air raids, two Egyptian planes were shot down near
Tel-Aviv. The Israelis also reported that, as part of Operation Barak, an
Egyptian army column near Isdud, north of Gaza, had been surrounded. The
Egyptians reported 400 attackers dead at Isdud during counter- attacks.
However thousands of the local population fled for safety from the historical
area. Its name derived from the ancient town of Ashdod, one of the five major
cities of the Philistines. Excavations showed that it had been occupied almost
continuously from the 17th century BC until 1948.
Egyptian naval forces launched an attack on the port of Caesarea.
June 4
The Scotsman's special correspondent, Clare Hollingworth, spent two weeks
involuntarily besieged inside Jerusalem. She reported a steady and insidious
destruction and disintegration, a city of empty buildings and accumulated
rubbish, adorned with rusting tangles of barbed wire. She was surprised to find
how little damage individual shells had done to the stone buildings.
As regards the Zionist occupied "new" or modern city of Jerusalem, the
destruction appeared to be widespread and extensive. Not that she, nor the
civilian Jew, was allowed any access. This area was dominated by the Haganah
and their terrorist comrades in arms, the Irgun and Stern Gang.
Jerusalem increasingly became less attractive. Although ground within the
modern city had been consecrated for Jewish burials, little effort was made to
retrieve the many corpses in the city outskirts. There, they were lying rotting in
the hot sunshine, along with foetid odours from accumulated garbage.
In "Jewish Jerusalem" very few shops were opened with fewer customers.
Initially shelling and sniper fire was the excuse for staying off the streets. This,
according to Hollingworth, was no longer the case. The fear was the actions of
the "young toughs" from the Irgun and Stern outfits. Soon to be revered as
heroes and subsumed within the mythology of the "purity of Hebrew arms", the
terrorists had turned their tactics on their own people - so much so that they "- who are beyond whatever law there is have cleaned out most private houses of
the richer classes and started to prey upon the shopkeepers." Steel shutter still
afforded some protection against the depredations of the Irgun and Stern
members, hence the shops stayed shut.
Hollingworth's observations on the situation facing the Jews of Jerusalem
are worth recording in full:
"By their past encouragement of the terrorists, whom they secretly supported
whilst publicly denouncing them, the Jewish leaders have created a
Frankenstein which will eventually cause them far more trouble than it ever
caused the British. It is obviously due to the presence of the Jewish 'Gestapo',
which taps telephones and has its spies and informers everywhere, that
everyone pretends to be in excellent spirits. The Jews must not be cast down by
the siege or by the prospect of a 'new Stalingrad' which some of the more
fanatical military leaders actually appear still to want. Nor is it advisable in
Jerusalem to question the policy of the Jewish authorities or to hope that the
war and the siege will soon end. Women who break down under the strain and
weep in public make haste to explain that they are bewailing the loss of a
relative. No amount of control, no threat or penalties can hide the fact that the
ordinary people of the new Jewish State hate the war and long for peace.. They
are, however, quite powerless to make their desires felt against the burning
fanaticism of the small group of people who now rule Jewish destinies."13
Zionist forces were reported to have penetrated Jenin at the apex of the "Arab
triangle" formed with Nablus and Tulkarm. Iraq claimed that 5 000 Zionists had
eventually fled Jenin, leaving 580 dead littering the battle area. The nascent
Israeli navy engaged Egyptian forces off Tel-Aviv in a three hour battle. Their
bombers were also in action, with one failing to return. The four Egyptian ships
were driven off.
The ancient village of Yibna (probably the site of the Philistine town of Jabneel)
was hammered with mortars as part of Operation Barak. It was found to be
deserted except for some old men and women who were "sent packing." At
sunrise it was possible to see streams of villagers fleeing towards the coast for
safety, according to the History of the Haganah.
A night attack on the village of Qaqun, with artillery and heavy mortar
fire, was met by stiff resistance from the Iraqi defenders. It ended with hand-tohand combat with knives, grenades and rifle butts. The Israeli version gave 450
Iraqi dead for 12 of their own men reported dead. [Zionist forces re-visited the
village of al Ja'una one year later to the day. At midnight Israeli army trucks
surrounded the village and forced the villagers into the trucks "with
brutality . . . with kicks, curses and mal- treatment." Isreali Knesset member
Eli'ezer Prai protested. He was told by prime minister Ben Gurion that military
reasons were "sufficient."14]
Within Jerusalem, two mortar shells crashed into two Greek Catholic churches
less than 24 hours after church leaders had telegraphed the UN protesting
against the violation of churches and convents in the Holy Land. The Arab
Legion immediately responded with a volley of artillery shells aimed at "Jewish
Jerusalem."
Three members of the self-appointed Transfer Committee discussed ways by
which the Palestinian Arab "exodus" could be made permanent. Destruction of
their villages and the settling of Zionist settlers in others was the answer. This
would prevent Arab return. Yosef Weitz allocated Jewish National Fund money
to start demolition activities in the Beit Shean Valley and on the Coastal Plain.15
Count Bernadotte reported that he did not know when the truce would begin.
The two sides had many reservations and would not meet together. In particular,
from the Arab perspective, to admit convoys into Jerusalem would completely
nullify their advantageous position gained by the blockade of the Tel-Aviv
Jerusalem road. With the Jews in Jerusalem short of rations and ammunition
they did not want them to restock in order to prolong the struggle in Jerusalem
should any truce fail to produce a peaceful settlement.
The real fear was that they would be offered terms which appeared
reasonable, and so hard to refuse unless they wanted to look like the obstacle to
peace, but which would weaken the Arab position.
June 5
A meeting took place in Tel-Aviv between Yosef Weitz and David Ben Gurion
where the former presented a memo "Retroactive Transfer: A scheme for the
Solution of the Arab Question in the State of Israel". In this document the
Transfer Committee proposed measures to block the return of Palestinian
Palestine. In fact the Jewish propaganda machine has so thoroughly misinterpreted the entire situation that it will take long and laborious work to arrive
at the true facts."17
As for the Zionist view, The Times quoted foreign minister Shertok as
claiming that acceptance of the truce was not a military necessity. Israel had
"burst its bounds". Nearly 200 Arab villages were in Zionist hands, while Jaffa,
Haifa, Tiberias, Safad and Jenin were all euphemistically declared "deserted."
In four weeks of fighting the Zionists, apart from some parts of the Negev
had not lost any of the land apportioned to them under partition. They had
gained 1 200 square miles of Western Galilee apportioned to the projected Arab
state. A large part of the new city of Jerusalem was in their hands.
Yosef Weitz sent two officials to tour the Coastal Plain in order to identify
empty villages suitable either for demolition or for Zionist settlement. The
village of al Maghar, previously home to about 1 750 Palestinians, was selected
for destruction. Around this time Ben Gurion noted in his diary that the village
of Daliyat al Rawha', home to 600 Palestinians, had been completely
demolished.
The Voice of Israel radio reported that groups of Arabs had asked to return
to their homes now situated within Israel. They had been told that the
government "can never reconsider the return of refugees as long as a state of
war still exists." Israeli broadcasts made it clear that refugees were not welcome
to return. And for those who refused to heed the message, there were other
means to reinforce that they were not welcome - land mines, barbed wire
around their land, booby traps and police dogs. Many were to be killed in the
attempt to repossess their birthright and heritage.
Cairo sources said that at least 300 Zionist troops had been trapped and killed at
Isdud. The Italian government announced a ban, for the period of the truce, on
Jewish combatants and supplies passing through the country.
With one night to go until the truce was implemented, the History of the
Haganah recorded that many operations were planned and carried out that night.
Yasur, north east of Gaza, with it population of 1 070 Palestinain villagers was
targeted. The nearby village of al Batani al Sharqi was occupied by the Eighth
Battalion of the Giv'ati Brigade. The village of Julis, adjacent to a former
British army camp was likewise occupied by the Giv'ati Brigade. Egyptian
sources claimed that this happened just after the truce took effect. The
remaining villagers of al Na'ani to the south of Ramleh, which had been
occupied about a month earlier, were according to Israeli historian, Benny
Morris, "probably ordered to leave or intimidated into leaving." 18
June 11
A host of complaints with regard to Zionist violations of the truce were made.
Cairo radio announced that "gangs of the so-called Zionist State" had violated
the cease fire in Beersheba, the Syrian and Jordan fronts. One hour after the
cease fire, an Arab Legionnaire climbed out of his trench to be met by fatal
machine gun fire. A Zionist attack was reported on the international airport at
Lydda. David Marcus, former New York City Commissioner of Correction and
supreme commander of Israeli forces on the Jerusalem front was "killed in
action" according to an Israeli spokes-man.
With the announcement of the truce, further looting of the palatial, Palestinian residences in West Jerusalem commenced. According to John Rose, one of
the few remaining non-Jews left in West Jerusalem:
"During this time looting of Arab houses started on a fantastic scale,
accompanied by wholesale vindictive destruction of property . . .
From our veranda we saw horse-drawn carts as well as pick-up trucks laden
with pianos, refrigerators, radios, paintings, ornaments and furniture, some
wrapped in valuable Persian carpets . . .
Safes with money and jewellery were prised open and emptied . . .
[it] continued for months. Latecomers made do with what remained to be
pillaged. They prised off ceramic tiles . . . removed all electric switches and
wiring, kitchen gadgets, water pipes and fittings.
Nothing escaped . . ."19
The Scotsman correspondent reported on a visit to the Palestinian hill town of
Quagun, a few miles from the main Tel-Aviv Haifa road. Three days earlier,
during a night attack, the villagers were driven out by the attackers. The orange
groves and wheat fields were filled with the "foul sweet smell of death" from
corpes of Iraqi soldiers waiting to be buried by Arab prisoners. Tulkarm rose in
the distance, the next target of the Zionists should the truce fail. Arab gunners,
positioned about a mile away, shelled the area - with little worthwhile result.
Further north, at the village of Kuwaykat, a few miles outside Acre, the Zionist
forces were giving it a further visitation. It had first been attacked during
January. Now the local militia of around 60 men armed with up to 50 assorted
firearms and one Bren gun repulsed a "large attack."20
East of Acre, the village of al Birwa, with its population of 1 460, was probably
occupied by the Carmeli Brigade in the aftermath of Operation Ben-Ami.
North east of Gaza, the village of Beit Daras was occupied shortly after the start
of the truce. Its residents had already fled following an attack on 10 May.
Similarly the nearby village of Iblis was attacked, with Egyptian forces
repelling the Zionist attackers.
June 13
After two days of cease fire the Israeli government stated that its army had
been"compelled to renew its activities in self-defence, following violation
of the truce by the enemy" in the area near Lake Tiberias. A report from
two American UN truce observers found that all fighting had ceased. In turn the
Arabs threatened "a general attack on all fronts" if the Zionists did not strictly
keep the peace.
Count Folke Bernadotte sent the Security Council a "coded" report on the
situation. It was believed that the findings favoured the Arabs, with Zionist
forces being blamed for breaches of the cease fire.
Despite the fact that a number of countries had recognised the state of Israel, at
the outset, the question was raised within the columns of The Scotsman as to
the legitimacy of the new state. Israeli censorship prevented the dissemination
of information and essential detail of the state. It was not known if the
Provisional Government conformed to the demands of international law for
recognition. Were there clearly defined boundaries ? Established authority,
acting with at least the positive consent of the populace ?
While the former point was never answered, the latter raised further
questions. An Israeli Army Ordinance of 26 May founded a Defence Army of
land, sea and air components as the single legitimate defence force apart from
the police. It terminology implied that attempts to overthrow the established
authority was not considered impossible. Then, Irgun and Stern Gang stepped
into the limelight.
Yet again there was mention of them dissolving and being absorbed into
the Israeli army so that their continued existence would be illegal. Yet the
Palcor Agency bulletin of 7 June, distributed in Britain by the Jewish Agency,
reported that the groups were still recruiting and fund raising. This official
government agency then went on to contradict the substance of earlier reports
of the dissolution of the terrorist groups.
In the bulletin the Irgun announced that they had not dissolved but
promised not to continue as an "underground army" in Jewish controlled areas.
Here it would be a political movement. In Jerusalem it would continue as an
armed organisation until the city was ruled by Jews. Its members must collect
funds because they did not receive any government assistance.
June 14
Yosef Weitz of the Jewish National Fund visited the the site of the village of al
Maghar which had been captured by Zionists about a month earlier. The
destruction and demolition of the village had started some three days earlier.
Commenting on the process of erasing the village, the birth place of the
noted eighth century Islamic jurist Abu al-Hasan Muhammad al-Maghari, he
observed "Three tractors are completing its destruction. I was surprised that
nothing moved me at the sight. No regret and not hatred, as this is the way of
the world . The dwellers of these mud-houses did not want us to exist here."21
On the same day, Ezra Danin a senior Haganah intelligence officer and official
of the JNF reported to Weitz on the progress of the destruction of the houses in
the village of Fajja, east of Jaffa, former homes to about 1 600 Palestinians.
The Gazan village of Kawkaba was occupied by Zion- ist forces, in
violation of the newly agreed truce. The 700 or so villagers were expelled.
The Red Cross were informed by the Arab authorities that a large group of the
elderly, women and children from villages on the coastal plain were being
"detained by the Israeli military authorities" [At this stage it was common
practice for the Zionists to seize all able-bodied Palestinian men, even if they
were unarmed, and send them to concentration camps or use them for forced
labour]. Red Cross assistance with their evacuation was requested.22
Meanwhile, all fronts were reported to be quiet for the first time since hostilities
began. Count Bernadotte was stationed on the Greek island of Rhodes planning
for a lasting peace in Palestine. An immigrant ship arrived from Marseilles with
420 passengers. Of those, it was reported that 128 men of military age were
taken to a detention camp in compliance with the truce conditions.
At the United Nations it was reported that the Arab states were faced with the
inevitability of accepting some kind of "Jewish State" if the truce was to
continue beyond 9 July. Optimists felt that territorial "adjustments" could be
made. The pessimists felt that further conflict was waiting round the corner. The
"pessoptimists", to borrow a phrase from the lexicon of Palestinian phraseology
which has sprung up over the intervening decades, felt that close consultation
with Washington would have a better chance than usual of helping President
Truman to resist Zionist pressure, since Congress would by then have dispersed
and American attention would have been diverted for a moment to the Party
Convention in Philadelphia.
June 15
UN planes began to patrol Palestine to prevent the entry of arms and fighting
personnel. Observers were already at the ports of embarkation for many Zionist
emigrants to Palestine. At the Security Council the feeling was that, in the long
run, the cease fire would not continue unless one side or the other retreated
from their claims. The "betting" was that the odds were against the Arabs.
Ben Gurion's diary entry for this day recorded the destruction of a number of
villages:
For the village al Manshiyya, occupied by Zionists about 4 weeks earlier, he
reported that the destruction of the village was already under- way. The village
site is now part of Acre. Likewise the destruction of Fajja, near Jaffa, was noted
by Ben Gurion. This village had been repeatedly attacked by both Irgun and the
Haganah. The same comment was made with regard to Beit Daja. This village
was one which linked Jaffa to the hinterland. The fate of the village of Biyar
'Adas, one with which the Haganah had declared a truce but which had suffered
attack and partial demolition at the hands of the Irgun was similarly recorded.
The village of Miska, where the residents had refused to leave until two months
earlier when they were forcibly expelled by the Haganah, suffered the same
fate. This was one, amongst a few near Tulkarm, where the Israeli left wing,
Mapam, party opposed the destruction carried out on the orders of the Jewish
National Fund.
Other villages whose demolition was recorded were al Mughar, Beit
Dajan, Hawassa, As Sumeiriya, Ja'tun, Daliyat [or Ruha]. The demolition of
Buteimat and Sabbarin was about to begin. The combined population total for
these villages was over 13 000.25
Yet, at this point, although Weitz had often pressed Ben Gurion for
official sanction of his Transfer Committee's demolition work, none had been
forthcoming. Although happy that the work was being done, he could not
openly endorse it for a variety of reasons.
On this day the 13 ministers of the provisional government of Israel, without a
formal vote, agreed to prevent a refugee return.7 Ben Gurion spoke out against
the return of the Palestinian refugees. ". . we should prevent their return . . . We
must settle Jaffa, Jaffa will become a Jewish city . . ." And with regard to
refugees in general "I will be for them not returning after the war."
Sharett agreed "They will not return. This is our policy, they shall not return."
Compensation should be paid for "abandoned" land but "they will not return.
[That] is our policy. They are not returning."
This stance was complicated by the position of the left wing Mapam party
which "opposed the destruction of Arab settled areas which is not dictated by
immediate military necessity." and which, the day previously, had agreed to
support the return of "peace minded" refugees at the end of the war.26
June 17
Zionist forces broke the cease fire when, according to Damascus, they attacked
and set fire to the village of Zingaria, to the north of Capernaum, on the shores
Concern was known to be expressed by Bernadotte over the extent to which the
terrorist Irgun and Stern gangs were controlling the Jewish population in
Palestine. It made truce maintenance difficult. It also acted as a control on the
expression of majority and possibly moderate opinion by Palestine's Jews.
Particularly those who would welcome a settlement.
During a visit to Tel-Aviv he made urgent representation to the Zionist
authorities to do everything possible to bring the terrorists under control.
A Zionist attack on Ein Ghazal, south of Haifa, was repulsed. It was not until
July when mass killings took place that the village was occupied. The Red
Cross, responding to an appeal from the Arab authorities, organised the
evacuation of about 1 000, elderly, women and children who had fled or been
expelled from villages in the Coastal Plain. One Red Cross official noted "It
was a moving scene with women carrying enormous bundles on their heads
while in their arms were two or three small children."28
For some reason the destruction of the town of Beisan apparently worried Ben
Gurion. He cabled the Golani Brigade's HQ to find out if the town had been
burnt down in whole or in part, and on whose authority.
The Irgun blasted part of the al Latrun monastery, claiming that it was
stronghold for the Arab Legion. However an Associated Press correspondent
visited the monastery and reported:
" . . in the face of repeated shelling by Israeli guns, the venerable Trappist
monks still cling to their famous Latrun monastery . . Neutral foreign reporters
accredited to the Trans-Jordan Arab Legion have visited Latrun continually
during the Palestine hostilities and have never detected the slightest violation
by the Arabs of the monastery's sanctity."29
June 20
Two bomb explosions in Cairo's Jewish Quarter killed 25 people, injuring 54.
The explosion came from inside, not outside, the Quarter thereby lessening the
consequences. A search of the area revealed two wheel
barrows loaded with gelignite.
It subsequently emerged that the police had, earlier, arrested seven Jewish
boys with a barrow containing a time fuse and explosives. It was claimed that
they were of the same type found at the scene of the explosions.
The Board of Deputies of British Jews passed a resolution urging the British
government to recognise the State of Israel "thereby laying the foundation of
lasting friendship."
concerned, had already been consigned to history for the time being. The focus
was on the fighting between the Israeli army and the terrorist Irgun - still being
referred to as "dissidents" under the new name of "Etzel".
While the Jewish Agency had tolerated and had given tacit agreement to
the activities of the two Zionist terrorist groups when it came to terrorising and
dispossessing the Palestinians, there was obvious disagreement when it came to
the same groups defying the authority of the 5 week old state.
This was made clear on when the Panama registered Atalena, with a
cargo of arms and illegal immigrants (from the perspective of the truce), Irgun
recruits, arrived from the United States. A landing craft was used to bring the
new Zionist recruits ashore, under fire directed at them from the Haganah army
of the new state. Many of the recruits were seen to be hit. Mortars were later
used to deter further incoming landing craft. Tension in Tel-Aviv was reported
to be high, with armed Irgun members establishing a beach-head in defiance of
the steel helmeted Haganah.
Talks then took place but when it became apparent that the terrorists were
not prepared to obey government orders not to land the illegal immigrants,
further force was used. This resulted in the Atalena being shelled, catching fire
with explosions amongst it cargo of munitions. The ship had to be abandoned
with many casualties.
President Truman announced that the United States and the provisional
government of Israel had agreed to exchange envoys.
A rare event took place at the village of al Birwa, to the east of Acre, when it
was recaptured by the villagers. Now wanting to harvest their crops, over 96
armed men and an equal number of unarmed men and women took part. They
remained for two days, harvesting their crops, before the village was retaken.
June 23
It was reported that Count Bernadotte did not regard the previous day's incident
at Tel-Aviv as coming within the scope of the mediator. He did ask the truce
chief in Palestine, Colonel Bonde, to investigate the number of Irgun recruits
which had landed - estimated at 200 - and the quantities of ammunition in TelAviv. Concern was expressed at the trouble exper-ienced in controlling the
Irgun and Stern groups who were opposed to the truce. The conviction was also
expressed that they were receiving arms from the Soviet bloc countries in
Eastern Europe.
Reports from new York indicated that the Haganah blew up the Atalena with
mortar fire. The decision had been taken that the sovereignty and authority of
the state was paramount. To allow the Irgun to unload the ship was to allow
political and military anarchy. Apparently the Irgun had intended to share the
cargo - ranging from ammunition for small arms to tanks - with Irgun units
within the regular army and the remainder of the army.
Although it was believed that the ship was loaded at Marseilles, it was
understood that the finance came from an extremist Zionist group in the United
States.
June 24
A curfew was imposed in Tel Aviv, with restrictions on the movement of the
population. This was followed by mass arrests of Irgun leaders. Severe clashes
were reported in the streets with 15 killed and scores injured as the Haganah
carried out its task.
June 25
Palmach troops drove Irgun units out of the southern part of Tel-Aviv during the
night. Irgun terrorist leader and Israeli prime minister-to-be , Menachem
Begin,escaped from the HQ building by the back door. A manhunt followed.
Former Irgun members were arrested in towns throughout the state. Two
members who left the Israeli Cabinet, following the Atalena incident, withdrew
their resignation, bringing to an end a crisis in government.
The arrangement by which the Irgun and Stern terrorists could serve in
the army, under their own commander, was ended. Such people were given an
amnesty and could re-enlist. The Irgun advised its members not to re-enlist but
to re-group at Jerusalem and elsewhere outside the state in order to carry on the
fight against the Arabs.
The UN formally charged the Egyptian forces with breaking the truce on the
southern front. The passage of UN food convoys to the Negev was prevented, a
UN aircraft was attacked as were Zionist positions to the south of Tel-Aviv.
A hint of the ongoing intrigue over Palestine was given in a report from
Rhodes, where the UN mediator, Count Bernadotte was based. Kings Abdullah
and Farouk were willing to recognise some form of Jewish enclave or state on
the coastal plain. Both monarchs stood to increase the size of their respective
kingdoms by such a tacit recognition of partition.
Syria and Lebanon, for their own reasons, were keen on the reinstatement
of the Mufti of Jerusalem, whose standing and that of his followers in the
Palestinian community had never been lower.
It was reported that Russia and Israel were to exchange envoys.
The Israeli army announced that it had inflicted 100 casualties, while recapturing the village of al Birwa, in clashes with Arab units.
There were indications that Yosef Weitz of the Jewish National Fund was
"frustrated and wary" about the progress of his Transfer Committee. There were
no tools or materials. Growing opposition from the left wing Mapam political
party about the "destruction of Arab villages" was also reported. With nothing
in writing nor any political leadership to endorse his actions in destroying Arab
villages, he gave instructions for all activities to cease.
June 26
Correspondents were keen to point out the perils facing the Zionist state which,
for once, could not be explained away by an "eloquent communique". There
was talk of a state within a state, despite a solemn treaty being signed by the
Irgun, undertaking to dissolve its structure and place its members and arms at
the disposal of the state. This second "state" was aptly described as one which
"bargains, makes and breaks treaties, and blackmails" - a description which is
still not far off the mark when it comes to the current Israeli treatment of the
Palestinian people and the world at large. However 50 years ago, the mind-set
of the terrorists was a threat to Israel itself. This was highlighted by the
desertion of former Irgun members from frontline posts facing the Arab enemy
to give their support to their colleagues under fire from the Haganah during the
Atalena debacle.
The Irgun still reserved the right to act at will outside the state, including
Jerusalem. This view was supported by many who, because so much blood had
been shed over the city, felt that Jerusalem was naturally theirs - not to forget
that by choosing the appropriate period in history for Biblical Israel, Zionist
claims extended to all of Transjordan and beyond.
The leaders of the remaining Palestinian Arab population of Jaffa presented a
petition asking that the exiled relatives of those Arabs still in Jaffa be allowed to
return. The appeal was based on the surrender agreement of 13 May where it
stated that every Arab who left Jaffa and wanted to come back, could do so by
submitting a request, as long as their presence did not constitute a threat to
peace and security.
It was an appeal which stimulated debate in the upper reaches of
government, particularly since a similar request had been submitted from Haifa.
It was an appeal which ultimately failed.30
June 27
While the members of the former Haganah were manning "dull front-line
positions" facing the Arab forces, the Palmach, which previously had been
under threat of dissolution (it apparently had a separate General Staff and its
units had strong left-wing affiliations), gave ample demonstration of loyalty to
the new government.
During the previous two days, its soldiers had roared through the streets of TelAviv in scout cars and armoured lorries questioning young men and bundling
them away if there were suspicions of Irgun membership. There were
occasional bursts of fire. By the end of this period about 360 arrests had been
made.
Meanwhile the last few thousand of British troops were ready to leave
Haifa, with troopships standing by.
Count Folke Bernadotte demanded that Israel recognise "the right of the
residents of Palestine who, because of conditions created by the conflict there,
have left their normal places of abode, to return to their homes without
restriction and to regain possession of their property."31
The World Jewish Congress met at Montreux, the first time since 1939. At the
top of the 10 day agenda was a motion to mobilise world Jewry to contribute
money, men and materials to the state of Israel.
The truce continued but with reports of Arab irregulars attacking Zionist
settlements and traffic near Affula.
June 28
Count Bernadotte sent his secret proposals for a "Holy Land settlement" to both
Zionist and Arab leaders. It was requested that the proposals be kept secret until
he received notification of their first reactions.
The last 12 Zionist prisoners held by the British military authorities were
released at Haifa. They included five youths suspected of hanging the two
British sergeants the previous year and five Stern Gang members.
June 29
Lt-General A Macmillan announced that British forces would cease to occupy
any area of Palestine from July 1st. Three tanks were stolen from Haifa Airport
in the early hours of the morning, believed to be the work of British deserters
and a Jewish technician. One was recovered.
It was reported that a considerable number of British deserters, many of
them Jewish, were left behind. In addition there were technical personnel who
could earn as much as 150 per month, paid by the Israeli forces.
Arab League sources repeated that no settlement would be possible if the
mediator called for recognition of a "Jewish State."
June 30
On Wednesday, 30 June, the last of the British presence departed from Palestine
after 31 years of increasingly discredited rule. General Macmillan was the last
to leave following on the heels of 3 000 men and their equipment. As the troops
embarked - with fixed bayonets and loaded rifles - they were reported to be
"singing and laughing like children released from a difficult term at school." In
their wake, 140 specially picked Jewish policemen took over the empty camps
and harbour installations.
A working port was handed over to the Zionists. Nothing was demolished.
The furniture was as the soldiers left it. A menu was flapping on the cookhouse
wall.
The Scotsman's reporter, Patrick O'Donovan, commented that "No Jews went
into the street to wish them God-speed". Only a dozen disconsolate dogs
mooned around the quays. "In all Haifa they alone showed any sign of regret."32
As if in preparation for the next half century, of the Palestinian people there was
not one mention.
On this day the Israelis issued their first "Abandoned Areas Ordinance".
Once this thin veneer of legality was in place, the theft, looting and seizure of
thousands of Palestinian homes and businesses was given it first coating of
legal gloss.
The lands and property of Arab refugees were considered abandoned,
even for those who fled only a few miles from their homes. They all found that
under Israeli law they had no right to reclaim their property - even for those
who returned a few weeks later.
Essentially the Emergency Regulations (Cultivation of Abandoned Lands)
empowered the provisional government to declare depopulated, conquered
areas as "abandoned". "Existing laws" could then be imposed upon the area, or
existing regulations could be varied, as appropriate. This included confiscation
of property. Leasing of land was dealt with at a later date.33
As from the end of June, with Britain refusing all requests for supplies for the
Arab Legion (See May 22), the Legion was effectively hors de combat. 34
Notes
1 David Gilmour, Debunking the myths of the '48 Exodus (Middle East International,
Issue 286, 24/10/86)
2 Norman Finkelstein, Myths, Old and New (Journal of Palestine Studies, Autumn 1991) p.88
3 ibid p.78
4 Michael Palumbo, The Palestinian Catastrophe, p.141
5 Benny Morris, Falsifying the Record (JoPS, Spring 1995) p.49
6 Palumbo, p.145
7 Morris, p.56
8 Walid Khalidi, All that Remains, p.403
9 The Scotsman 2/6/48
10 Benny Morris, The birth of the Palestinian refugee problem, 1947-49, p.138
11 Palumbo, p.144
12 Morris, p.137
13 The Scotsman 5/6/48
14 Khalidi, p.459
15 Morris, p.161
16 ibid p.136
17 The Scotsman 12/6/48
18 Khalidi, p.400
19 Nathan Krystall, The De-Arabisation of West Jerusalem 1947-50,(JoPS, Winter 1998) p.13
20 Khalidi, p.22
21 ibid p.395
22 Palumbo, p.142
23 The Scotsman 16/6/48
24 Morris, p.163
25 Khalidi, population figures from 1944/45 census
26 Morris, p.141 [ Also, See Note 6]
27 The Times 19/6/48
28 Palumbo, p.143
29 Khalidi, p.393
30 Morris, p.144
31 ibid P.142
32 The Scotsman 1/7/48
33 Morris, p.174
34 Benny Morris, Refabricating 1948, (JoPS, Winter 1998) p.93
July
Children were dying, as were the sick and the elderly. The dead
were covered with stones, branches and a quick prayer. Children,
abandoned, were wandering about crying.
Lydda-Ramleh Death March, "The Palestinian Catastrophe"
At the start of July,Yosef Weitz of the Jewish National Fund was reported to
have suspended his campaign of destruction of Palestinian villages. This
resulted from opposition in the Israeli Cabinet from members of Mapam, and
others, which effectively terminated the activities of this first, unofficial and
"self-appointed", Transfer Committee.
It was the month when the contradiction between destroying Arab villages
and the need to preserve them in order to accommodate incoming Zionist
settlers started to make itself evident. In Haifa and Jaffa, with the remaining
Arab residents concentrated into ghetto areas, the largest concentrations of
empty Arab houses were to be found. It was proposed that 2 000 new immigrant
families would go to Haifa, with 1 000 families going to Jaffa.
Further contradictions and ironies arose when it came to the looting of the
harvest of abandoned Palestinian fields. Some settlements avoided payment to
the government for the produce they were stealing from the fields. Kibbutz
Ma'ayan Zvi received a letter from the Committee for Abandoned Property "I
heard with bewilderment and sorrow that [your] members . . are stealing
vegetables in the eastern fields of Tantura. Don't your members have a more
honourable way to spend their time these days?"1
During this month, outright expulsion of the Palestinian people from their
land and villages moved up a gear despite, as Israeli historian, Benny Morris ,
insisted "there was no Cabinet or IDF [Israeli Defence Force] General Stafflevel decision to expel" the Arab population. It became clear that "from July
onward, there was a growing readiness in the IDF units to do just that"2 .
Operation Dekel, during which most of Lower Galilee, including Nazareth, was
occupied commenced during this period. It led to the widening of the coastal
strip occupied by the Zionist forces in Acre district. One feature of the military
assaults during this Operation (and others) in the north of Palestine was the
discriminatory treatment afforded to Christian and Druze, compared with the
Muslim.
Often it was the Muslim who feared most the approaching troops since
they were the ones who tended to be involved in resisting the Zionist forces.
The Christian and Druze communities tended to be passive and cooperated with
the occupier. The Druze villagers, according to Israeli sources, often
collaborated and provided intelligence to the advancing Israelis. The latter were
It was only as time passed that the full horror of the Zionist actions at LyddaRamleh became apparent. Actions which ensured the expulsion of the
Palestinian residents of the two towns from their homeland.
On 2 August, the UN mediator Count Folke Bernadotte, visited their
refugee camps near Ramallah. His car was stormed by thousands of desperate
people. He wrote "I have made the acquaintance of a great many refugee
camps but never have I seen a more ghastly sight than that which met my eyes
here at Ramallah." The refugees shouted that they wanted to return to their
homes. It was apparent that they had been through a horrific ordeal.
This from a man who had done much valued humanitarian work at the end of
the Second World War to assist Jewish and other European refugees who had
survived Nazi concentration camps.4
First there was the slaughter of civilians - men, women and children. Then there
was the terror created by the events which the residents of Lydda and Ramleh
were witnessing round about them. This was reinforced by the inevitable
loudspeaker trucks warning the people to leave if they wanted to avoid the fate
of those whose corpses were still lying, decomposing, at the nearby Dahmash
Mosque. It was a very potent warning.
Before they were force marched to the east with the injunction "Go to
King Abdullah" ringing in their ears, the Arab refugees were stripped of their
possessions. Eye witness accounts and reporting testified to this. The
Economist reported "The Arab refugees were systematically stripped of all their
belongings before they were sent on their trek to the frontier. Household
belongings, stores, clothing, all had to be left behind." Those who showed any
resistance were shot in cold blood. Accounts of rape were eventually
forthcoming.
Then the "Death March" to the Arab Legion's lines began.
While Israeli prime minister-to-be, Lt Colonel Yitzhak Rabin commented that
there was no way of avoiding firing warning shots in the air to get people to
undertake the 10 hour walk, bullets found the way to the air inside people's
without fear of arrest. Only a few ring-leaders remained detained, with many
previously arrested being released. With negotiations being conducted to allow
the re-entry of the terrorists into the army, it was clear that the government was
trying to avoid opening a further breach between them.
There were Zionist complaints that the Arab forces in Jerusalem had breached
the truce. This was countered by a communique from the Transjordan Defence
Ministry accusing the Zionist forces of several breaches. An advance on an
Arab Legion sentry post had been forced to retreat under heavy covering fire
from Hadassah Hospital. It resulted in a number of exchanges between the
opposing forces until midnight.
Details of Bernadotte's plan emerged. Suggested was a union between Israel
and an enlarged Transjordan. Emphasis was given to the reallocation of the
Palestine territories allotted to Arab and Zionist Jew. This would remove some
of the "jig-saw" aspects of the original partition plan, by creating two
homogenous blocks. The current status quo with the Zionists in control of
Western Galilee (and Jaffa) and the Arabs holding the Negev would prevail.
Equal rights would be given in Haifa. It was argued that with the truce
being of great benefit to the Zionists, and Bernadotte's proposals offering them
all they had demanded in the past, there was no valid need for the Zionists to
demur.
It was confirmed that the proposals would not, unlike the original
partition plan, be imposed upon the parties. There would have to be mutual
acceptance.
Out of the lime-light, the process of ensuring that any returning Palestinian
family would have no home to which they could return, continued apace.
Within the Cabinet of the provisional government of Israel, agricultural minister
Zisling raised the issue of the destruction of villages in the Jezreel Valley, on the
orders of the army.
Meanwhile, seemingly light years away and giving no hint of being aware
of the inhumanity being perpetrated against the Palestinian people, the World
Jewish Congress, meeting at Montreux, expressed the sentiment that the State
of Israel "might occupy a position in the Middle East analagous to that of
Switzerland in Europe."
July 5
An extension to the 4 week truce was proposed by Count Bernadotte. He also
suggested that Jerusalem, Haifa, its port, refineries and terminals should be
demilitarised, with armed guards from those countries already providing
observers being stationed in the demilitarised areas.
fire.
Five Britons, officials of the British-owned Jerusalem Electric Corporat- ion,
were kidnapped by armed Zionists in Jerusalem. They were taken to an
internment camp "somewhere in the city."
The Times' correspondent filed a report which included an item on the
"Jewish defence army" parading in Jerusalem with its armour and other artifacts
of war on full display. Members of the truce commission and the consular corps
attended a ceremony where the "flag of Jerusalem" was handed over to the
"Jerusalem district commander".
A reader could be excused for wondering if The Times had lost its
objectivity or sense of reality. After all, it was only "modern" or West Jerusalem that was under Zionist occupation. A glance at the end of the article
explained this rewriting of reality. It included the one word Censored. Already
the outside world was being presented with a sanitised, Zionist view of events.
The Givati Brigade were issued with their operational orders. The 1st Battalion
was to take Tall as Safi area, in the south of Palestine, and "to expel the
refugees encamped in the area" with the excuse added "to prevent enemy
infiltration from the east."9
July 8
It was announced by Azzam Pasha, Secretary-General of the Arab League, that
the Arabs would begin fighting the next day at 7am (BST). All appeals for an
extension of the truce were rejected. The exception was the Old City of
Jerusalem. The cease-fire would be observed in the Old City, it would not be
used as a base for military attacks on the outskirts "so long as the other side
does not launch any attacks against this holy old city."
An Arab League statement accused the Zionist forces of "many atrocities
against the civilian population, plundering their homes, and pillaging their
property and forcing them to work in the erection of fortifications, digging
trenches, and other hard labour. These flagrant violations of the truce
constituted in themselves sufficient justification for the immediate resumption
of fighting by the Arab States. Zionists continued their aggression against Arabs
in areas under their occupation and steadily persisted throughout the truce in
pursuing their policy of smuggling immigrants, arms and ammunition into the
country, as had been witnessed by United Nations observers. They have also
occupied a number of villages and positions which had not been in their
possession at the time of the cease-fire."10
The village of Hulayqat, north east of Gaza, was recaptured by Egyptian forces
in a surprise attack. In the same area the Third Battalion of the Giv'ati Brigade
attacked the village of 'Ibdis, defended by two companies of the Egyptian army,
Arab aircraft bombed Zionist positions north of Jenin, with Iraqi forces
following up with a ground attack.
In Jerusalem there were echoes of stray shots from rifles, the occasional
sound of mortar bombs. Some shots were fired from Zionist positions in Mount
Zion. Thick clouds of smoke from Zionist held areas were believed to indicate
that demolition was in progress.
Just before the truce ended, a local truce was organised for the city which
lasted a couple of hours. This was at the request of a Dr Weingarten. Together
with his daughters and accompanied by two others described as mayors of
Jerusalem districts, discussions were held. These were confined to the future of
the Jewish Quarter in the Old City.
The village of al 'Abbasiyya, east of Jaffa, which was first visited by the Irgun
in December 1947, was occupied "practically without any fighting."
As part of Operation Dekel the attack on the village of Kuweikat, which had
refused to surrender, was preceded by a heavy artillery barrage with the
predictable result as outlined by the army commander, Dov Yirmiya
"I don't know whether the artillery softening up of the village caused casualties
but the psychological effect was achieved and the village's non-combatants
inhabitants fled before we began the assault"
The concept of "artillery softening up" is, of course, a euphemism for striking
terror into the hearts of the villagers. One villager later recalled:
"We were awakened by the loudest noise we had ever heard, shells
exploding . . the whole village was in panic . . women were screaming, children
were crying . . . Most of the villagers began to flee with their pyjamas on. The
wife of Qassim Ahmad Sa'id fled carrying a pillow in her arms instead of her
child."11
The retreating village defenders fled to neighbouring Amqa which was captured
soon after (the only Druze village in Western Galilee to be evacuated). The few,
mostly elderly, remaining in Kuweikat were expelled to adjacent Abu Sinan.
Most were refused shelter and fled to Upper Galilee or the Lebanon.
Deir Tarif, attacked as part of Operation Dani, successfully opposed the
attackers.
Situated to the north east of Gaza, the hamlet of Bi'lin was occupied by the 1st
Battalion Giv'ati Brigade. Its population of about 180 and others were expelled
in accordance with the orders from Brigade Commander Shim'on Avidan
". . expel the refugees encamped in the area, in order to prevent enemy
infiltration from the east to this important position."12
On this day, Operation An Far "cleared" a number of villages of their
inhabitants. The Operation was carried out ". . to eliminate the threat and
danger posed by the presence of Arab civilian concentrations at the rear of the
front." The villages "cleared" were
al Jaladiyya, north east of Gaza [pop 360]
al Masmiyya al Saghira, north east of Gaza [pop 530]
Qastima, north east of Gaza [pop 890]
Summil, north east of Gaza [pop 950]
Sajad, south of Ramleh [pop 370]
Tal al Turmus, north east of Gaza [pop760]
Barqusya, north west of Hebron [pop 330]
Ibnibba, south of Ramleh [pop 490]
Jilya, south of Ramleh [pop 330]
al Khayma, south west of Ramleh [pop 190]
Qazaza, south of Ramleh [pop 940]12
The Scotsman gave an overview of the strength of the opposing military forces.
On the Arab side, the small motorised division of 10 000 troops, with sixteen 25
pounder guns, of the Arab Legion was considered, by far, the most reliable
component. From Transjordan there was about 20 000 men including police,
with about half in Palestine. Iraq contributed about 2 000 men, Egypt 8 000.
Saudi Arabia had a token force.
The Syrians and the Lebanese appeared to have faded away, with recent
hostilities indicating a Sudanese presence. Finally there were the irregulars, the
Arab Liberation Army under the control of Fawzi el Kaukji. This was composed
of mainly Palestinian Arabs and former members of the disbanded Transjordan
frontier force. In all they were about 15 000 strong. This made a total of about
40 000 with 200 armoured cars and light tanks. Between Iraq and Egypt there
were 200 planes. Ammunition was considered to be in short supply.
On the Israeli side there was a fully trained army of 42 000 backed by a parttime militia of 50 000. Light and heavy machine guns, mortars, anti- tank guns,
home made armoured cars - they were in plentiful supply. They were believed
to have B2 bombers, fighters and plenty of ammunition.
July 10
As part of Operation Dani, the village of Deir Tarif, near Ramleh, was captured
despite putting up stiff resistance.
This particular Operation saw one of the most brutal expulsions of the conflict,
with the towns of Lydda and Ramleh as the target. "Softening up" of the
population took the form of air attacks. By mid-day the General Staff was
informed "There was a considerable [civilian] flight from Ramle. There is great
value in continued bombing." Renewed bombing was requested and one of the
brigades was informed "Flight from the town of Ramle of women, the old and
the children is to be facilitated. The [military age] males are to be detained."13
The village of Khirbat Jiddin and site of a Crusader castle was captured. The
ruined fortress had been used by the 'Arab al Suwaytat bedouin. The village of
Beit 'Affa was taken, briefly, by the Israelis during the night but was recaptured
by the Egyptian army.Israeli sources spoke of 300 Egyptian and Sudanese
soldiers killed and 200 captured.
To the north west of Hebron, the villages of Mughallis and Tall al Safi
(identified as the Philistine city of Gath and appeared on the 6th century BC
Madaba map) were captured and "ethnically cleansed" as part of Operation An
Far. The capture of the latter was reported to have und- ermined the morale of
the surrounding villages. The villages of al Barriyya and Daniyal, both a couple
of miles outside Ramleh and Lydda were captured. Both were used as a base for
launching the attack on Lydda and Ramleh.
The Egyptian 6th Battalion was ordered to recapture the village of Julis, near
Gaza. The lack of preparation of the Egyptian forces for a battle was underlined
by staff officer Gammal Abd al Nasir "Once again we were facing a battle for
which we had made no preparation. We had no information about the enemy at
Julis." The attack was called off with considerable loss of life. "None of the
defenders were injured."14
With most of the villagers evacuated following an attack a couple of days
earlier, only 200 man remained within Innaba, to the east of Ramleh. The
village was attacked from three sides with the defenders fleeing when they ran
out of ammunition. Of the village's 300 buildings, only nine were left standing
to house a small garrison. The rest were dynamited.
Jimzu and Kharruba, villages to the east of Ramleh, were occupied by the
Yiftach Brigade. The latter village was immediately demolished, as ordered.
The village of Qula, an important crossroads to the north of Lydda was subject
to a tug-of-war between the Arab Legion and the Israeli Armoured units of the
Alexandroni Brigade. The latter eventually gained control following Israeli
"heavy losses". Likewise, al Tira was occupied and destroyed. Lydda was now
cut off from the north.
The four week truce came to an end with artillery duels between the opposing
sides within the Old City of Jerusalem. Damage was reported to be extensive
their forces had entered the foothills of Western Galilee, capturing four Arab
villages. The Arab advance north of Jenin was reported to have been halted.
Jenin was bombed by Israeli planes.
From Acre, the Haganah was reported to be pushing towards the
Lebanese frontier and Nazareth - all territories outwith Israel's boundaries. An
operation was started to re-capture the village of Mishmar Hay Yarden.
Bombing of the Syrian village of Kuneitra was reported. The Zionists
abandoned the isolated settlement of Kfar Darom and conceded heavy Egyptian
pressure at Majdal.
The village of Beit Nabala, an Arab base to the north east of Lydda, was
captured. This action suggested that an attempt was being made to encircle the
towns of Lydda and Ramleh.
Operation Dani HQ ordered the Yiftach Brigade units "to dig in every
place captured and to destroy every house not intended for occupation [by IDF
troops]"15 The Brigades's intelligence officer reported "The bombing from the
air and the artillery[shelling] of Lydda and Ramleh caused flight and panic
amongst the civilians [and] a readiness to surrender. The HQ repeatedly asked
for further bombings including use of incendiaries.16
The New York Times reported that the residents of Lydda and Ramleh
were fleeing on "camel trails" towards Ramallah. The main road was blocked
elsewhere. What the paper neglected to add was the reason for the people
fleeing.
In the early evening, at the head of the 89th Commando Battalion, Major
Moshe Dayan "blitzed" and terrorised the civilians of both towns for less than
one hour. His personally recruited troops contained a contingent of Stern Gang
terrorists. The Chicago Sun Times, in describing this "ruthlessly brilliant
charge" reported that "practically everything in their way died. Riddled corpses
lay by the roadside" including men, women and even children".
With the invaders not keen to take prisoners, a loudspeaker exhorted those
who wanted to be safe to go inside a local mosque. Hundreds of Arabs sheltered
within the precincts of the Dahmash Mosque, hands on head in surrender. A
female member of the Palmach, Netiva Ben Yehuda, recalled what happened. In
retaliation for a previous incident, over 80 Palestinians were machine-gunned to
death. The bodies eventually lay decomposing for ten days in the hot sun. This
was to be the start of terrorising the people of Lydda.17
At Ramleh, town notables were detained by the Israelis and eventually
signed a surrender document which came into effect the following morning
The Druze village, 'Amqa, in Western Galilee was shelled and "cleansed"
following an attack and artillery shelling by the Sheva Brigade and the Carmeli
Brigade. It was reportedly the only Druze village to suffer this fate.
"A multitude of inhabitants walked one after another. Women walked burdened
with packages and sacks on their heads. Mothers dragged children after
them . . Occasionally, warning shots were heard . .
Occasionally you encountered a piercing look from one of the youngsters .
[which] said 'We have not yet surrendered. We shall return to fight you.'"
Other soldiers recorded impressions of how "children got lost".
How a child fell into a well and drowned, ignored by those clamouring for
water. Not only was all hope abandoned but eventually possessions and bodies.
". .to begin with utensils and furniture and in the end, bodies of men, women
and children, scattered along the way."
During the march, with no food or water and in 1000 midsummer heat, some
people drank their own urine. A few men attacked nursing mothers in attempt to
suck a few drops of moisture from their lactating breasts. Some of the marchers
resorted to chewing grass in an attempt to find some moisture. Children were
dying, as were the sick and the elderly. The dead were covered with stones,
branches and a quick prayer. Children, abandoned, were wandering about
crying.
Pregnant women went into premature labour as a result of their ordeal.
None of the babies survived. With no opportunity for burial, they were coverd
with grass and abandoned. The trauma can only be imagined.
At steep uphill climbs, soldiers continued to shoot in to the air. Lowflying planes buzzed overhead.
Eighteen year old survivor, Ismail Shammout, recalled the moment he discovered some water and rushed to fill a pot. "At that moment a jeep pulled up
with three people. One of them, an Israeli officer, got out. He pulled a gun and
put it to my head and ordered me to put the water down."
There was another survivor, a 22 year old medical student from the American
University in Beirut, paying a visit to his home town of Lydda. He witnessed
many scenes of horror. He was called away from a hospital filled with dead and
wounded to bury his older sister who had been killed. Forced out of his home
when it was stormed by Zionist fighters, his neighbour's son was shot dead in
front of him when the boy refused to let looting soldiers search his person.20
During the march from his homeland he was forced to drink his own urine. And
he vowed vengeance.
As Dr George Habash, his name was to be well known when he later
repaid the terrorism suffered by his own people. He was responsible for
planning a number of PLO operations, including the hijacking of airliners.
abandonment of Arab "aggression". This drew the comment from The Times
that the long-winded reflections on the morality of the Arabs came strangely
from the spokesman of an organisation that had shown "no inhibitions in
promoting its own political aims."
Faris Bey, of Syria, commented that the United States saw no aggression
when Jewish immigrants used force to create a State in Palestine, but it did
when the inhabitants resisted. He added that there would be no peace in
Palestine until a settlement based on justice had been achieved.21
The chairman of the truce commission reported to the Council that "The
Jews in Jerusalem . . appeared to be increasingly inclined to ignore the most
elementary rules of international war."22
July 14
At the UN an American resolution calling upon the protagonists to lay down
their arms or face sanctions was supported in principle by the mem- bers, with
disagreement on detail. An Israeli spokesman said that despite reservations,
Israel would accept it if the Arabs did likewise.
Arab spokesmen continued to insist on the unfairness of a policy which
threatened Arabs with sanctions for the use of force against "an immigrant State
created by force." There was a feeling in the Council that, in light of the
military situation in Palestine, it might be in the interests of the Arab states to
accept the resolution.
Britain argued that, while supporting the substance of the U.S. proposal,
she felt that the Arab position had not been fully appreciated by the United
Nations.
The Arab press provided grounds for comment.
A significant change was noted in the Lebanese press - no glowing acc- ounts of
Arab victories, but realistic analysis of the implications of the pre- sent
situation. In Damascus and Baghdad the big drum was still being violently
beaten, with much angry comment on Britain's new role. Espec- ially in the
preventing of the Arab Legion making a whole-hearted war effort.
The hopes of a truce were reported to be in the ascendancy particularly
since the leaders now seemed to realise the seriousness of the situation. A
marked increase in anti-British feeling was reported, following on from the
imposition of economic sanctions and the refusal to supply arms and
ammunition to the Arab countries.
The small hamlet of 'Aqqur was occupied during the second phase of Operation
Dani. It is now the site of thick forest, established by the Jewish National Fund
in memory of four Zionist Jewish Americans. The village of Ma'lul, west of
Nazareth, was also occupied during this second phase, "cleansed" of its
residents and levelled - except for its two churches and a mosque, at times used
by a neighbouring kibbutz as cow sheds. In the same area, al Mujaydil, suffered
the same fate, as part of Operation Dekel. Apart from a church and monastery,
the rest of the village was levelled.
The Muslim area and military positions in the village of Shafa 'Amr
sustained a heavy artillery barrage causing the Muslim residents to flee. The
previous night the Druze leaders had met with Israeli intelligence officials and
arranged a sham Druze resistance to be followed by a Druze surrender.
Within the Israeli Cabinet, questions continued to be raised by Mapam members
with regard to the destruction of villages. In reply to assertions that he, Ben
Gurion, professed not to know who was destroying several named villages, Ben
Gurion retorted that he could not be expected "to send out men to look for
destroyed villages."23
July 15
By seven votes to one (other reports indicated eight votes to one) with three (or
two) abstentions the Security Council adopted a resolution ordering a cessation
of hostilities in Jerusalem within 24 hours and three days for the rest of
Palestine. Non-compliance could mean "coercive action" being undertaken - the
first time in its history that the Security Council threatened sanctions.
The chairman of the consular truce commission reported the commission's
opinion that the earlier abduction of the five Britons (by terrorists disguised, it
was revealed, as the Israeli army) was part of a Zionist plan to seize Jerusalem's
power station.
A young Norwegian serving as a UN guard in Jerusalem was killed in the
Mount Scopus area.
In and around Jerusalem, artillery duels were commonplace - but not during
daytime when the Arab forces observed Ramadan. Part of the village of Beit
Safafa was captured by the Etzioni Brigade. Units of the Irgun and Stern Gang
captured the semi-abandoned village of al Maliha.
The Irgun and Stern Gang announced that they would regard foreign troops in
Jerusalem as invaders even if they came to the city to enforce the
internationalisation of the city, as demanded in the partition resolution of 1947.
In a debate within the left-wing Mapam party, criticism focused on General
Allon's use of tens of thousands of refugees as a weapon of strategy.
"Many of us are losing their [human] image . . . How easily they speak of how
it is possible and permissible to take women, children and old men and to fill
the roads with them because such is the imperative of strategy. And this we ask,
the members of Hashomer Hatzair, who remember who used this means against
our people during the [Second World] war . . . I am appalled."23
It was reported that the Israelis had renewed their assault (their fifth attempt) on
the Latrun area, the only major point acting as a blockade on the Tel-Aviv
Jerusalem road. Zionist forces also headed towards Nazareth from Shafa Amr, a
village which had been attacked and captured the previous day.
Al Damun, to the south of Acre, was a victim of the second phase of Operation
Dekel when the Sheva' Brigade moved into Western Galilee. Some villagers
fled during the initial bombardment, others were expelled. The village - which
is mentioned by the Muslim traveller, Nasir Khusraw, in 1047AD when he paid
it a visit - was completely destroyed. Mi'ar, to the east of Acre, suffered a
similar fate. It is now the site of a leisure and picnic area.
Ein Hod, south of Haifa,was captured with its residents either expelled or
treated as POWs. It was not destroyed and has long been an artists colony,
populated by those with a Bohemian tendency. The village mosque was turned
into a cafe/restaurant. Ironically, those of the village who did not become
refugees remained in the area and founded a Mark II version of their village,
also named Ein Hod. It currently forms one of Israel's 100 or so "unrecognised"
villages within the Israeli state. Its status is such that, as with all "unrecognised"
villages, it receives no municipal services - no school, no roads, no electricity,
no water or sewage provision etc.
The village of Kafr Lam, established in the same area in the 8th century,
was subject to shelling from two warships and captured. Bir Ma'in, east of
Ramleh - appearing in crusader records as Bermenayn - was captured by the
Yiftach Brigade. This gave the Israelis control of the road from al Latrun to
Ramallah. The Arab Legion suffered heavy casualties in a counter attack the
following day. The site of the village was eventually used for target practice and
other military purposes.
Saffuriyya, north of Nazareth, a village reputed to be the home of Jesus'
grandmother, became a centre for Jewish religious life following the Jewish
Revolt in 70 AD. The beginning of its end came shortly after three Israeli planes
dropped "barrels filled with explosives, metal fragments, nails and glass" killing
and wounding a number of villagers.
The arrival of thousands of refugees from Shafa 'Amr had already
undermined local morale. The unexpected air bombardment and that of nearby
artillery, the failure of the Arab Liberation Army to respond to a plea for help
also took its toll. The local militia proved to be unorganised and ineffective,
fighting independent of each other. Within 24 hours a mass exodus began, with
Operation Dani also claimed Deir Rafat. Its buildings survived until September when they were blown up for "military" reasons. 'Islin, now an industrial site, was also captured, as were Kasla and Ishwa. Most of these villages
had been on the front-line since April. Those villagers who withstood the
inevitable mortar bombardment which preceded the arrival of the Harel Brigade
units, were expelled when the Israelis entered their villages.
July 18
The Arab States accepted the Security Council's demand for a truce throughout
Palestine. It was pointed out that although the Arabs had agreed to a cease-fire,
the truce could not continue unless three conditions were met
1] Complete cessation of Jewish immigration pending UN attempts to solve the
Palestine problem.
2] The 300 000 Palestinian refugees must be allowed to return home. They must
be restored to their property.
3] The mediator had admitted that there was an element of advantage to the
Zionists inherent in any truce. In fairness to the Arab side, the period of the
truce must be fixed, not of indefinite duration as stipulated by the Council.
The Arab League repudiated the suggestion that the Arabs were the aggressors
or that their actions constituted a threat to world peace. Arab forces had
"entered Palestine to restore order and security in the vacuum created by the
withdrawal of the mandatory Power." Exception was taken to the reference of
the provisional government of Israel in the preamble to the resolution. It was
regarded as a violation of the terms of the first cease-fire which guaranteed
respect for the claim of both sides. The UN was warned that an attempt to
create a Jewish State would not be calculated to serve the cause of a peaceful
solution.
In Amman there were demonstrations against the Arab League and the decision
to accept the truce. Damascus was bombed twice over the week-end with few
casualties.
A few hours before the cease-fire, Israeli troops advanced to the north east of
Nazareth, opening up the Haifa-Tiberias road. Zionist forces broke the truce
within 24 hours when they carried out a dawn attack into the Mea Shearim
quarter in Jerusalem. The Arab Legion regrouped and counter- attacked in a
successful bid to regain their positions.
The Egyptian army claimed to have captured the town of Aslug "which
the enemy occupied during the last truce." It was also claimed that the towns of
Bet Tamah and Holiouat were occupied with the Zionists losing 87 dead in a
counter- attack.
The sixth and last attempt was made to capture al Latrun with armoured
vehicles and two tanks. However the Israelis had to wait until 1967 for success.
Then, the villages in the area were razed to the ground with even the stone
carted off to leave no trace. It included the biblical village of Amwas or
Emmaus. The site is now a picnic area in Canada Park.
East of Ramleh, the hamlet of Shilta was occupied by the First Batt- alion of the
Yiftach Brigade. This victory proved to be short-lived with the lives of 44
Zionist soldiers being claimed. "Thus, in the few hours before the truce took
effect, we experienced the most severe blow of Operation Dani, which had been
full of triumphs."30
It was reported that Nazareth was largely undamaged during the recent battle.
Israeli soldiers were forbidden to enter holy places. Sentries had been placed at
large places of worship and retreat. " . . benediction was sung in many chapels,
and the few Muslim inhabitants were still being called to prayer."
The five kidnapped Britons were handed over to the Haganah, with the Irgun
having been given assurances that they would be tried publicly on the suspicion
of spying.
A report in The Scotsman shed light on the planes acquired by the Israeli
airforce. A war surplus Flying Fortress, detained in Nova Scotia because it was
believed destined for Palestine, "escaped" to the Azores overnight.
Three Flying Fortresses, apparently B17s, had "disappeared" on a Transatlantic
flight the previous months. The same planes had bombed Cairo and had been
observed over Nazareth. Reporters spoke to American pilots claiming to have
flown the planes. Unsubstantiated reports said that planes had been flying into
Israel from secret bases in Italy and Corsica.
In the "Ten Days" between the two truces, it was estimated that up to
30 000 new refugees had been added to those already crowding Upper Galilee
and southern Lebanon.
July 19
Fighting continued, despite the truce, with each side accusing the other of
violating the cease- fire order. In particular there was heavy fighting in the
north, at Azaziyat, where the Zionists held positions inside Syrian territory.
Syrian forces maintained heavy attacks near Mishmar Hayarde and, on the
eastern shore of the Sea of Galilee, attempted to recapture Suseita overlooking
the settlement of Ein Gev. Suseita had been occupied by Zionist units a few
hours before the cease-fire deadline.
On the Haifa Tel-Aviv road the hamlets of Jaba, Ghazal and Izzam had been
active, in earlier days of the conflict, in impeding Zionist trucks on their way to
Tel-Aviv. They were now home to a substantial number of refugees. The
surrender of the villages had been demanded by the Israelis, before the second
truce came into effect. The surrender demanded had been rejected by the village
elders who wished to wait until the truce commenced.
At 9am the Zionists arrived.
A stiff resistance was put up against tanks and aircraft. The 5pm cease- fire
came and went. The onslaught continued and was to continue every day for a
week. The air attacks were particularly devastating, with the defenceless
villages being strafed on every bombing run. However the villagers refused to
surrender or flee despite many deaths.
It should be noted that both Iraq and Syria had rejected the truce while Saudi
Arabia, Egypt, Transjordan, Lebanon and Yemen accepted it. The acceptance of
the truce conditions by the Political Committee of the Arab League was
attributed to the "perilous shortages" of arms, ammunition, transport and petrol.
It was recognised that the decision could have adverse consequences for the
domestic situation facing the Arab governments. Many of their people had been
led to believe that victory over the Zionists was just around the corner and
hence could not understand why the truce had been accepted.
The two Cromwell tanks stolen by Zionist forces from Haifa airfield during the
previous truce were seen in action trying to break the Arab Legion road block in
the Latrun area. Three light tanks and ten armoured carriers took part. Legion
sources said the attack had been repulsed with two light tanks destroyed.
Tel Aviv radio announced the execution of Meir Tubiansky, a Jew, found guilty
by a Haganah military court of spying for the Arab Legion. He had been an
official of the Jerusalem Electric Corporation, the employing company of the
five kidnapped Britons who, it was also announced, were to be tried by a civil
court.
The King, accompanied by the Queen, inspected 350 officers and men of the
Palestine police force when they paraded for the last time. After presenting
medals he congratulated them on "a job well done."
July 20
With many of the 300 000 Palestinian refugees coming from territories under
Zionist control, political sources spoke of the idea of "population exchanges"
between Israel and surrounding Arab states. This was the first reported
comment on a racist philosophy which assumed that because the Palestinian
people were Arab, they should be prepared to stay in any Arab country rather
than the land of their birth.
A large bomb explosion in Cairo's main shopping centre killed four and injured
17. There was an official denial that the "Israelite" airforce dropped a bomb.
The statement also spoke on behalf of the terrorist groups, the same groups
which the provisional government apparently found hard to control. It claimed
that no "Jewish organisation" was responsible.
July 21
The hamlets of Jaba, Ein Ghazal and Izzam were invited, by their local
collaborator, to meet with the Zionists and the Red Cross to arrange the
collection of bodies. It soon became apparent that this was a ruse to put them
off their guard. That night the hamlets were first bombed then subject to a
ground attack by infantry and troops. Sound trucks were brought up to Jaba
declaring "yield or we will destroy the whole village." Still the villagers
continued to resist.
Mirvak, the newspaper of the Stern Gang, declared that "every Briton must be
regarded as a secret agent and must be imprisoned or expelled from the
country." The threat was extended to Count Bernadotte and his Swedish
assistants. It was supported by the Irgun who had kidnapped the five Britons
and the main opposition party, the right-wing Revisionist Party. The threat had
also the support of some influential American backers of the Irgun and the
Revisionists.
The UN mediator was singled out. "Does the fact that Sweden has not
recognised our State give her subjects the rights to do spies' work in our
country." The statement was a reflection, according to The Scotsman, of the
frequent allegations in many Jewish quarters and newspapers that Count
Bernadotte was pro-Arab and was working, mainly on British instigation,
against the Jews.31
Within the Cabinet of Israel's provisional government an attempt was made to
silence the voices of those dissidents who disagreed with the razing of the
Palestinian villages. Agreement was reached that jurisdiction over the
"abandoned" villages should reside with the Ministerial Committee for
Abandoned Property. In reality this Committee was to prove of little value in
the face of continuing private initiatives and the actions of army units in
destroying villages.
Elsewhere, a call was made for the creation of four settlements in the
Jerusalem corridor "within one or two days." The haste was explained by the
need to create 'facts on the ground' before the arrival of truce observers who
might regard the creation of new settlements as a violation of the truce. The
Histadrut and critic of the forcible transfer policy, articulated his concerns:
"There is a feeling that fait accomplis are being created . . the question is not
whether the Arabs will return or not return. The question is whether the Arabs
are [being or have been] expelled or not . . This is important to our moral
future . . . I want to know who is creating the facts? And the facts are being
created on orders . . [There appears to be] a line of action . . . of expropriation
and of emptying the lands of Arabs by force"36
Others at the debate had a different perception of Israel's "moral future."
Shlomo Lavi, an influential Kibbutz movement leader, stated that "The . . .
transfer of Arabs out of the country in my eyes is one of the most just, moral
and correct things that can be done. I have thought of this . . . for many years."
This view was backed by Avraham Katznelson, another prominent Mapai
leader. There is nothing "more moral, from the viewpoint of universal human
ethics, than the emptying of the Jewish State of the Arabs and their transfer
elsewhere . . . This requires the use of force."37
July 25
It was reported that three British soldiers were being held prisoner by the
Israelis, captured while fighting for the Arab side. One was Joseph Simpson of
Perth who was wounded, then captured, at the fighting in Lydda- Ramleh.
Thirty-five tons of high explosives, on its way to Palestine, was seized in
Genoa. Several members of a "secret organisation" were arrested.
The military governor of Jaffa, Yitzhak Chizik, resigned. This followed weeks
of battling with army units, various Zionist bodies, vandals and private looters
all with their eyes on the property of Jaffa's refugees. His replacement
immediately set about the task of uprooting the remaining Palestinian Arabs of
Jaffa and ghettoising them in one area. The orders were "to evict the Arabs
where Jews were to be settled."38
July 26
The Zionist controlled section of Jerusalem was proclaimed "occupied
territory" by the Israeli Government, to be placed under a military governor and
administration. This followed a three hour talk between Count Bernadotte and
Israel's foreign minister, Moshe Shertok. The mediator's proposal for
demilitarisation of the city was opposed, particularly with regard to withdrawal
of troops and men of military age.
Apparently the decision took UN observers and officials by surprise. The
deciding factor, it was argued, was the alleged lack of control over the terrorist
groups ensconced in the city and outwith "the jurisdiction of the provisional
Government."
Azzam Pasha of the Arab League said that, in principle, they were prepared to
make Jerusalem an open city. However, they were not prepared to assist in the
"provisioning" of its 100 000 Jewish population while about 400 000
dispossessed Palestinian refugees were left homeless and without resources. It
was pointed out that if Jewish immigration did not stop and the Palestinian
refugees were not repatriated the "Arabs would be obliged to renew the
struggle."
It later emerged that Bernadotte met with Israel's foreign minister, Sharett
(Shertok), in Tel-Aviv and in reply to a question concerning the readmission of
Palestinian refugees replied "The Jewish government could under the present
conditions, in no circumstances permit the return of Arabs who had fled or been
driven from their homes."39
In further response to Bernadotte's prodding on the issue of repatriation of
refugees, Shertok, replied that there could be no return during hostilities and
thereafter the matter could only be considered "in the context of a general
peace settlement."40
Meanwhile, the Committee for Abandoned Property which was supposed to be in charge of "abandoned" villages admitted that it was not possible
for it to function. The army did as it saw fit and representatives of the
Committee were "not even allowed to enter occupied territory . ."41
The Scotsman's correspondent, on the spot, reported that while there was
yet no official comment on the matter, the indications were that the refugees
would not be allowed to return.
By their "mass flight" the Palestinians had forfeited the right to return to
the land of their birth. This argument was described as a "moral" argument. This
Zionist morality then went on to spin the web of disinformation which was to
dominate for decades. An argument which, although specious, was to be rarely
questioned.
"They were not driven out; most left before they were attacked. Haifa, with
70 000 Arabs, was captured by fewer than 200 armed Jews. Safad in Galilee
was abandoned . ." No attempt at investigative journalism here. More a willing
acceptance of the Zionist line that the Palestinians merely " . . quit their homes,
crops, flocks and and personal belongings and fled . . ."
A hint of justification enters the article. Was there "obedience to the
directive of the Mufti . ." But no hint of the immorality of the situation. After
all, if the Israeli leaders are to be believed, the fighting was only "against
invading armies and not against local Arabs, who had no need to go." No
mention of the fact that, in war, civilians do flee the conflict zones, never mind
The Mapam- affiliated kibbutz, perhaps as a sop to their socialist ideals, were
keen to point out that the land they desired belonged to foreigners, effendi, not
the peasant fellahin. Undoubtedly the truth lay closer to the reason given by the
moshava Nahalal in the Jezreel Valley when it asked for 175 acres of land
belonging to the village of 'Ilut. Stressing that an Arab village could, at some
point, be built on the land "It seems to us that the time is now ripe to transfer
this land to permanent Jewish possession."44
July 28
Iraq al-Manshiyya, a village to the north east of Gaza was attacked by the
Giv'ati Brigade. It was successfully repulsed by the Egyptian forces.
Count Bernadotte submitted a 'Note' to Tel-Aviv which suggested that "from
among those who may desire to do so, a limited number . . . and especially
those formerly living in Jaffa and Haifa, be permitted to return to their
homes."45 He accepted Israel's differentiation, on security grounds, of males of
military service age and "others." However he was not successful.
Notwithstanding Israel's arguments for refusing this request, on the 18
July, at the start of the Second Truce, the Israeli army instructed its units to
prevent the return of refugees "also with fire."45
A plan, calling for the establishment of 21 settlements on mostly Arab owned
land in the Jerusalem corridor, Lydda-Ramleh and Western Galilee was
presented to Ben Gurion. It forced the socialist Mapam to face the ideological
problem of Jewish Zionist settlement on Arab owned land and on land
earmarked for Arab sovereignty. No mean problem considering the party
supported Jewish-Arab coexistence and the return of refugees.
However the establishment of settlements on both sides of the partition
boundary was viewed as essential for strategic and security interests . This
circle was squared by the expedient of agreeing that land could be set aside for
any returning refugees, compensation could be offered. The concept of
"development for two peoples" won the day for those on the left of the political
spectrum. Never mind that this involved the theft of the land and property of
others.
July 29
The provisional State Council in Tel-Aviv announced the rejection of the UN
mediator's proposals for the demilitarisation of Jerusalem. The partition
resolution of 29 November 1947 was now regarded as being no longer binding
"in view of Arab aggression". Israel would not agree to the repatriation of
Palestinian refugees before a final settlement was reached since "humanitarian
considerations could not be separated from the political and military issues."
The first UN supervised convoy to Jerusalem was stopped by three Arab Legion
armoured cars at the Latrun. It was forced to divert along a roughly constructed
miltary road before eventually reaching the city.
July 30
With 12 days of the truce having passed, violations were reported to have
increased over the past 48 hours. With the full complement of truce observers
yet to arrive, the whole exercise was regarded as ineffectual. So far, truce
observers were not acting as a deterrent. In the south, where fighting was
reported to be increasing in intensity, observers had to withdraw because their
lives were in danger.
Notes
1 Benny Morris, The birth of the Palestinian refugee problem, 1947-49, p.172
2 Norman Finkelstein, Myths, Old and New, (Journal of Palestine Studies, Autumn 1991) p.81
3 Michael Palumbo, The Palestinian Catastrophe, p.132
4 ibid p.134
5 The Times 2/7/48
6 Morris, p.138
7 ibid p.142
8 ibid p.144
9 ibid p.212
10 The Scotsman 9/7/48
11 Morris, p.199
12 Walid Khalidi, All that Remains, p.91
13 Morris, p.204
14 Khalidi, p.115
15 ibid p.356
16 Morris, p.205
17 Palumbo, p.126
18 Morris, p.206
19 The Jerusalem Times 29/6/98
20 "Interview with George Habash" (JoPS, Autumn 1998)
21 Morris, p.210
22 The Times 14/7/48
23 Morris, p.164
24 ibid p.211
25 Palumbo, p.123
26 Najwa Kawar Farah, A Continent called Palestine, p.45
27 The Scotsman 17/7/48
28 Khalidi, p.118
29 ibid p.304 and p.118
30 ibid p.415
31 The Scotsman 22/7/48
32 Morris, p.183
33 The Times 24/7/48
34 Palumbo, p.140
35 Khalidi, p.166
36 Nur Masalha, A Critique of Benny Morris, p.96 (JoPS, Autumn 1991)
37 ibid p.93
38 Morris, p.191
39 Palumbo, p.147
40 Morris, p.143
41 ibid p.164
42 The Scotsman 27/7/48
43 Morris, p.168
44 ibid p.174
45 ibid p.145
August
the right of Arab refugees to return to their homes at the
earliest possible moment should be reaffirmed.
a message from UN Mediator , Count Folke Bernadotte,
to the UN Security Council
road to avoid Arab Legion fire at the Latrun, the first since the truce began. In
the city itself, fighting took place at Jaffa and Damascus Gates, Mount Zion and
along the line through Mea Shearim and the Musrara quarter.
The UN force of truce observers was reported to be nowhere near its full
complement.There was a shortage of personnel, helicopters, light aircraft and
vehicles. Hence the investigating of complaints was seriously hampered. The
observer force was put on alert along the Palestine coast line when two landing
craft with a cargo of arms for the Zionist forces were reported to be arriving
from Italy.
The UN mediator set out on a tour of Jewish and Arab "centres" with Israel
refusing to give clearance to accompanying correspondents. The situation
facing at least a quarter of a million refugees and those Palestinians living in
isolated groups in hostile territory gave cause for concern.
Israeli foreign minister Sharett replied to the mediator's request that a limited
number of refugees be allowed to return. It contained a refusal to allow small
numbers of refugees to return to Haifa and Jaffa. His carefully worded reply
pointed out the problems of re-admitting them - problems which were never
encountered when it came to Jewish Zionist immigrants arriving in Palestine.
He expressed sympathy for the refugees since "our people has suffered too
much from similar tribulations for us to be indifferent to their hardship." Later
that month, in a private letter, he expressed the determination "to explore all
possibilities of getting rid, once and for all, of the huge Arab minority which
originally threatened us."4
August 2
At the UN, Britain called attention to the problem of 200 000 displaced Jews
and the reality of more than 550 000 Palestinian refugees - the result of ". . .
United Nations proposals for a Palestine settlement . .". Increasing Jewish
pressure on Palestine had intensified Arab fears and the sense of injustice that
other Powers had been content to leave the problem of anti- Semitic persecution
to be solved almost exclusively by settlement in Palestine.
Britain's offer to contribute an immediate 100 000 achieved nothing,
with the Soviet Union and the Ukraine unwilling to cooperate until
"voluminous information" about refugees elsewhere - Europe, Arabia, Cyprus had been obtained by the secretariat.
The Middle East correspondent of The Times sketched the situation in Palestine
from the time of the First Truce.
Prior to the truce, the Haganah and the Irgun were regarded as lacking in
tenacity, showed clumsiness in attack and disregarded the elementary rules of
warfare. This did much to justify the optimistic view of eventual success for the
Arab armies. Despite the poor quality of the Zionist forces, they had occupied
large chunks of land ordained to be part of an eventual Palestinian State - with
an estimated 300 000 terror stricken Palestinian civilians on the move.
In contrast the Arab Legion "had shown tenacity, discipline and chivalry."
It had the most to show, as a result of good leadership. Most of its officers,
including the commander at Jerusalem, were Arabs - giving lie to the Zionist
picture of a British-led Arab Legion.
To the south the Egyptian army had invaded the Negev, occupied Gaza,
Bersheeba and Hebron. The few Zionist settlements in their path had been
destroyed. They had however, come to grinding halt when they met hard Zionist
resistance some 20 miles from Tel Aviv. They had the habit of issuing
"communiques that were a joke even in the armies of their allies."
The Iraqi army had been badly directed with little progress being made
against the Zionists. Its 500 mile long line of communications over a desert
road under a burning sun did not help. As for the Syrian and Lebanese forces
"the less said the better." They had been severely rebuffed with Zionist forces
eventually raiding deeply into Lebanese territory. In general, the Arabs had a
shortage of transport and ammunition, while the opposite prevailed within the
Israeli camp.
The article examined the question of why the Arab Legion sought a
solution by force and concluded that it was felt that the outcome had already
been pre-judged at the Security Council in favour of the Zionists. It was felt that
those who dominated the Council were resolved, regardless of the merits of the
case, to force a solution acceptable to Zionism. A view reinforced by the closing
of the eyes to truce violations.
By the 15th day of the Second Truce the Arab Legion had refused to allow
convoys and water to reach Jerusalem, in violation of the truce terms. However,
the Legion argued that this situation would prevail as long as the Zionists
refused to conform to the truce provisions with regard to the demilitariastion of
the city.
Hostilities were reported to have resumed to the south of Bersheeba with
Egyptian troops attacking Zionist positions at Beer Aluj.
August 3
While fighting to the south of Bersheeba halted with the arrival of truce
observers from Gaza, it was renewed a few miles further north at Revivim.
Israel accused Britain of being in breach of the truce, of supplying the Egyptian forces with military equipment from British army stores at Rafah. The
equipment, it was alleged, was then transported to the Faluja and Iraq
Suweidan, two villages occupied by the Egyptians in the south. Israel had
alleged that the Egyptians had broken the truce by attacking a convoy at Hatta.
A subsequent attack by the Israelis had resulted in the loss and capture of
military equipment and transport by the Israelis.
With the demilitarisation of Jerusalem very much on the agenda, Count
Bernadotte visited the Zionist occupied section of the city. A main feature
appeared to be the removal of all arms from the city, the evacuation of all armed
forces with control of the city left in the hands of the truce observers.
"Temporary partition" of the city was also mooted.
During his visit to the city he warned the Arab Legion that its "stubborn
refusal" to permit the pumping of water through Latrun constituted a severe
breach of the truce. Referral to the Security Council was threatened.
August 4
The Scotsman reported on the situation of 250 000 "Palestine Arab refugees"
encamped around the "little hill town of Ramallah." Supply of water was a
problem, sanitary arrangements scarcely existed and a very real danger existed
of typhoid claiming victims in the next few days. Inoculation was underway but
supplies of vaccine were inadequate.
Families were living in the dust under olive trees. There were no cooking
utensils which, in reality, was not a pressing problem since the only food
available was bread rushed from Amman. A warning was given that shelter,
food, clothing and medicine must be found before winter set in or there would
be a large number of deaths "though many of them are only a few miles from
their native towns and villages."
The refugee division of the UN Social Affairs Department acknowledged that
all figures for the refugee population, so far, had been "underestimations."
Count Bernadotte cabled the Security Council asking that "the right of
Arab refugees to return to their homes at the earliest possible moment should be
reaffirmed." The Israelis raised "technical objections" to this development.
The Israelis informed the mediator that if any of the five British planes at his
disposal landed in Israel again, the crew would be detained. This followed from
the provisional government's objection to the mediator's use of facilities from
any country "whose neutrality had been compromised."
Israel complained to the Security Council over the continuing detention of
11 000 Jews, including 7 500 men, in Cyprus - arguing that their detention was
not necessary under the truce resolution. The reality was that the release of
several thousand Jewish Zionists of military age would not have encouraged the
Arabs to observe the First Truce, never mind agree to the Second. In addition,
the mediator's operational instructions of 27 July indicated that male
immigrants of military age should only be permitted to enter Palestine in
numbers which ensure "that no military advantage accrues to either side."5
August 5
The provisional government of Israel invited the Arab governments for peace
negotiations following discussions with Count Bernadotte. This was
accompanied by the threat that if, in Israel's eyes, the Arab side continued to
violate the truce it would feel free to act on any front and would not limit itself
to defensive measures. Effectively the provisional government gave itself carteblanche for continuing its campaign and military operations against the
Palestinians, regardless of the truce.
Israel rejected the need for the demilitarisation of Jerusalem although it was
conceded that discussions for "improving the present situation" was possibility.
Effectively the death-knell for any idea of "internationalising" of the city as
required by the Partition resolution.
Reliable sources reported that the Irgun, possibly in tandem with the Stern
Gang, intended to carry out a campaign of terrorism against British officials in
Europe, including London. This would be in "reprisal" for the detention of
Jewish immigrants in Cyprus.
Jamal Husseini, vice-chair of the Palestine Arab Higher Committee and chief
delegate to the UN was recalled to Damascus for talks on the formation of a
new "Government for the whole of Palestine." This was seen as an important
change in the Arab League's view of the situation.
Previously King Abdullah's ambition to take over the Arab areas of
Palestine had blocked any move to form a local government. The Arab League
had now rejected Abdullah's conciliatory approach to the Zionists in favour of
"unyielding opposition." It was reckoned that greater numbers of Arab troops
would be involved in the next phase of the war.
At the request of Israeli foreign minister, Moshe Sharett, a memorandum was
drawn up outlining a plan to prevent the return of the Palestinian refugees.
Submitted on the 5 August, it recommended "pulling down Arab houses", a
propaganda campaign to get the Zionist view of events to "local and possibly
foreign journalists" and the drawing up of a plan for "the settlement of refugees
in Arab lands." This programme was immediately approved by Sharett.6
August 6
With sniping continuing in Jerusalem, it was announced by the office of Count
Bernadotte that all proposals for the future of Jerusalem had been dropped.
Beirut's reply to the invitation to attend peace talks was brief "We do not
recognise the existence of a Jewish state and will not speak with terrorists."
Cairo newspapers described the idea as "unthinkable." King Abdullah replied "I
am concerned to-day only with the problem of those who were kicked out of
their homes - our Arab refugees - and that is a problem that blocks every just
and moderate solution."
Britain's representative at the UN, Sir Alexander Cadogan, replied point- bypoint to a letter from the Israeli representative circulated the previous week. The
letter tried to justify the kidnapping the five British employees of the electricity
company in Jerusalem. The reply exposed the extent to which the provisional
government was prepared to lie in order to justify the actions of the terrorist
Irgun.
The reply rejected the assertion that the men had been arrested in their
homes. They had been abducted either in the power station or the house
opposite - all of which were under the protection of the UN truce commission
flag. Added was the comment that the authority for the Israeli position lay with
the Irgun and that it was not acceptable that "more regard should be paid to the
word of a lawless, terroristic society than to the testimony of the truce
commission . ."
Rejected also was the Israeli catch-all of "military security". The
abduction had taken place on 16 July. It was not until nine days later that this
part of Jerusalem was declared "occupied territory."
August 7
The Times published a comment on the actions of the "Israelite Government"
arguing that it appeared to be oblivious of the immense moral effect which even
a small token return of refugees would have on Arab public opinion. It found it
difficult to understand the provisional Government's insistence that the problem
should only be regarded from the viewpoint of military necessity and
expediency.
It further reported that in the opinion of the mediator's advisers, that when
it came to the problem of refugees, Israel could not be completely absolved
from responsibility. Many Arabs had fled because they feared that they would
suffer the same fate as the inhabitants of Deir Yassin, who were massacred by a
"dissident" group of the Irgun Zvei Leumi early this year. The massacre it was
noted, was intended as a demonstration of "Irgun strength and ruthlessness."
Even at this juncture the concept of blaming the victim for their plight
was apparent. The reference to a "dissident group" demonstrates that the nature
of the Irgun appeared not to be fully understood. And while Deir Yassin
certainly has its place in the Palestinian experience as one of the reasons behind
the mass exodus of the Palestinian people from their land, more than thirty
years were to pass before the full terror was revealed, confirming the personal
accounts of the eventual 750 000 refugees.
August 8
Typhoid was reported amongst the estimated 100 000 refugees sheltering in the
hills between Nablus and Ramallah. There was a grave danger of spreading
disease due to lack of water and under-nourishment. Eye disease was prevalent,
affecting 90% of the children. Where there was water, there was a dense
population of refugees - increasing the risk of epidemics.
The truce observers began using a small aircraft to monitor violations in
Jerusalem. There were daily reports of small-arms fire, shelling and mortar fire.
It was announced that the Irgun, while objecting to the proclamation of the city
as "occupied territory" and the appointment of a military governor, would,
never-the-less, obey the orders of the military governor. However they would
maintain their "independent military formations" but would coordinate their
activities with those of the army.
With the truce being broken every day, it was regarded that both sides
were taking advantage of the undermanned observer force. Belgium had
provided its full complement of 50. Both France and the US had provided under
half of each of the promised 125 observers. Communications and transport
equipment was poor with no radio communication between observer forces in
the south and total reliance throughout Palestine on 30 mechanically unsound
US jeeps from an army surplus dump in Greece.
It was reported that the water pumping station at Latrun had been declared a nomans-land by both the warring sides.
Israel accused the Arab Legion of bringing 200 reinforcements from
Transjordan into Jericho.
August 9
With the arrival of the first diplomatic representative of a major power to take
up his post in Israel (Pavel Gershev of the Soviet Union),The Scotsman dwelt
on the Russian and Communist influence within Israel. Here the popular
sentiment was pro-Russian, partially arising from Soviet support at the UN with
the caveat that "communism of the type practised in Russia has strictly limited
appeal."
The Communist Party in Israel was small though very active. It
2]
The number of displaced Arabs and refugees exceeds 550 000, of which
300 000 had sought refuge in other Arab countries.
3]
August 12
Two large explosions followed by fire destroyed the Latrun pumping station
which supplied Zionist occupied West Jerusalem. Twelve hours earlier Count
Bernadotte had visited the building and assured Zionist officials that the water
supply, which had been cut off for four months, would be speedily resumed.
The incident was considered a blow to Bernadotte and his staff who, at the best
of times, were unpopular anyway with the Zionists.
The immediate reaction of the UN was to blame the Arab Legion since the
pumping station was located within an area under the Legion's jurisdiction but
guarded by UN personnel. However, it was reported that Arab irregulars had
been seen in the area shortly before the explosions. One consequence was that
the mediator agreed to a rearrangement of the boundary line in the Latrun area.
Another was that the Israelis disregarded the mediator's instructions and refused
to allow the residents of Ajanjul and Buweira to return to their villages.
Israel formally proposed to Count Bernadotte an exchange of prisoners of war.
It was estimated that the Zionist forces held about 5 000 prisoners, with the
Arabs holding about 850 Jewish Zionists.
August 13
It was reported that about 4 000 "Exodus Jews" who had been brought to
Germany following an earlier abortive attempt to enter Palestine had fled their
British zone camp in Berlin. Assisted by the American-Jewish Relief
Commission, they reached the American zone where exit permits were issued.
It was believed that Palestine via Marseilles was their eventual destination.
With the Israelis refusing to accept the "no return fire" request from the
mediator a request was sent for more truce observers to be sent to Jerusalem.
Outside the southern walls of the Old City, at Zion Hill, and at Deir Abutor to
the west, heavy fighting was reported. Israeli sources indicated that an Arab
Legion attack had been repulsed with one Israeli soldier killed and 12 wounded.
The Israeli government asked the UN to fix "an early time limit for the present
truce by which either peace must be concluded or the invading armies leave, on
the understanding that, failing either, the Israeli government would be free to
seek a way out of the impasse by its own actions."
August 14
Israel's OC Operations Yardin wrote to foreign minister Shertok "Because of the
spread of diseases among the Arab refugees, I propose that [we] declare a
quarantine on all our conquered areas. We will thus be able to more strongly
oppose the demand for the return of Arab refugees and all infiltration by Arabs
[back] into the abandoned villages - in addition to our opposition [to a return]
water pumping station at Latrun had been the act of Arab irregulars. They were
now unsure as to who was responsible.[ Author's note: Keep in mind that the
blowing up of the pump station gave the Israelis the pretext for ignoring a rare
direct instruction from the mediator to allow some 400 residents from two
neighbouring villages to return to their homes. It gave the Israelis an
opportunity to criticise the UN "laxity" in protecting the station. In the event,
the Jewish residents of the Zionist occupied section of the city were not too
discomfited by this action in that an emergency pipe-line was soon in place].
No opinion was given as to the responsibility of the continuing hostilities
in Jerusalem. Although the report made clear that the Zionists had been the
"more aggressive party" since the start of the Second Truce and had only
consented with reluctance to the mediator's request that neither side should
open or return fire in Jerusalem.
The Times made a pertinent observation with regard to Israeli strategy at this
point in the conflict.
The letter to the Security Council wanting a time limit to the truce within
which peace must be achieved or military action would be resumed, had only
been circulated to the Press, not the members of the Security Council. This was
felt to be a disarming tactic, to mute any criticism of Israeli aggressiveness and
violations of the truce, by pointing out the extent to which Israel felt
disadvantaged by the truce.
Already signs of a world community willing to turn a blind eye to Israel's
hostile actions, in order to avoid criticising the nascent state, were emerging.
The report stated that some delegations, including the British, were most
concerned at the turn of events in Palestine and at indications that the Zionist
forces were receiving, among other armaments, large numbers of aircraft "but
exploration of a situation which may involve the Jews in responsibility for
fighting, even in the Holy City, is not a task that some other delegations can
approach with relish."
Count Bernadotte appealed directly to US Secretary of State, Marshall, for
emergency supplies to help the 330 000 Palestinian Arab and 7 000 Jewish
refugees threatening to form "a sudden human disaster comparable to an
earthquake or a tidal wave." Successful mediation, he said, depended upon a
solution to this problem.
With winter approaching, the situation was "desperate", death threatened many.
Of the refugees, 30% were children under five years of age; over 10% were
pregnant or nursing mothers " . . almost entirely with- out food except for small
supplies of flour."11
Dr Paul Mohn, a representative of the mediator, spoke with Israel's foreign
One accused the UN observers of being "really too acquiescent to the Arabs."
Four spying charges against the remaining two kidnapped Britons were
withdrawn for lack of evidence. Eight charges remained plus the additional
charge of complicity in the Ben Yehuda Street bombing against one of the
accused.
Kibbutz Yiftah was established on the lands of Blida in the Galilee area.
At a high-level meeting of Ben Gurion, his foreign minister, finance minister
and others including Yosef Weitz of the Jewish National Fund (members of
Mapam were not invited principally for their 'departure from reality and their
ideological hallucinations'6) the problem of Palestinian Arab refugees and ways
to prevent their return was discussed. A variety of views were presented at this
meeting: the need to destroy Arab villages, settle Zionist Jews in the other
villages and cultivate Arab land; others spoke of the need to buy land, some
opposed the destruction of villages, reservations about settling Jews in Arab
houses was evident for at least one member of the meeting.
Ben Gurion observed that it was best that as many Arabs as possible did not
return.14
The meeting also discussed the question of Arab property, with one Israeli
intelligence officer suggesting that refugees should be compensated for property
they were forced to leave behind. The paymaster would be American Jews since
"American Jewry's yearly income is 11 billion dollars."15 One participant
observed that Arabs in Israel would be forced to prove their right to their own
property. Ben Gurion posed the question "Would it not be possible to exchange
Arabs for Jews?", which attracted the approval of Minorities Minister Belchor
Shitrit.15
These discussions were reinforced by actions on the ground. On the same day
Yigael Yadin, OC Operations, issued an order which stated ". . . that we are not
interested in Arab inhabitants [in Israel] and their return [to Israeli territory]
must be prevented at all costs."16
August 19
The Security Council, in response to the almost desperate concerns of Count
Bernadotte, adopted a multi-paragraph resolution essentially out- lining the
responsibilities of the warring parties in Palestine with regard to the truce. The
Ukraine abstained while Russia (which took the position that there would be no
Arab refugee problem if Britain had not incited the Arabs against the Partition
scheme), Syria and Colombia declined to support differing sections. Britain,
America, Canada, and France introduced the resolution.
Arab owned land. As ever the pseudo-conscience of the left- wing of the Zionist
movement prevailed - settlement on Arab land was to be on sites where there
was sufficient surplus land to accommodate and maintain the original residents,
should they return. How this conscience had to be squared with the fact that
several of the proposed sites had yet to be conquered and "cleansed" of their
inhabitants was never explained. It did, however, give a clear indication that
with or without a truce in place, further hostilities were to be initiated.
In the end the 32 settlements were to occupy 30 000 acres of land of
which under 6 000 acres was Jewish owned. All but five of the sites lay outside
the Partition borders.
In the Jerusalem corridor Kibbutz Mishmar-David was built on the land of
Khulda, Tal- Shahar on Khirbet Beit Far, Kibbutz Harel on Beit Jiz, Taoz on
Beit Susin, Kibbutz Tzor'a on Sar'a, Beit Meir and Shoresh on Beit
Mahsir/Saris, Kesalon on Kasala and Giv'at Yearim/Eitanim on Khirbet Deir
'Amr.
In the Lydda-Ramleh area Bnei Atarot, Mahane Yisrael, Be'erot Yizhak all
on the land of Wilhema, Beit Nehemia on Al Haditha, Gimzo on Khirbet
Zakariya/Jimzu, Mishmar-Ayalon and Kfar Bin-Nun on Al Kunaisiya/Al
Qubab.
In the northern approaches to the Negev, Tirosh on Amuriya, Kibbutz
Revadim on Al Kheima, Segula and Nahala on Barqusiya- Summeil, Kibbutz
Gal-on on Zeita, Revaha on Hatta, Otzem or Komenemiut on Karatiya,
Zerah'ya/Shafir on Jaladiya and Meishar/Asoret/ Zekher-Dov/Shdeima/Kfar
Mordechai on Bash-shit.
In upper Western Galilee, Ahihud/Kibbutz Yas'ur on Al Birwa, Kafir
Yasif/Amqa/Abu Sinan on Amqa, Ein Ya'akov/Kibbutz Ga'aton on Khirbet
Shifiya, Goren on Khirbet Jalil, Shlomi on Al Bassa, Kibbutz Lohamei
Hagetaot/Regba on As Sumeiriya and a settlement on the land of I'ribbin on the
Lebanese border.
In Eastern Galilee, settlements were established on the lands of Nimrin
and Eilabun.17
Ben Gurion was warned that the US was contemplating measures on the
refugee question that Israel would find not to her liking. This followed a report
from Israel's representative in Washington of "American public opinion
gradually being undermined . . . . All hostile forces unite in publicising and
shedding crocodile tears regarding plight [of] Arab refugees."18
US Secretary of State, Mr Marshall, informed Count Bernadotte that the State
Department was working with other Government agencies to determine what
could be done as quickly and practically as possible to alleviate the refugee
In the vicinity of Jerusalem mortar firing and sniping had increased, leading to
speculation that a break down of the truce in the city was imminent. Colonel
Dayan accused the UN observers of "lax supervision" on the Arab side and
"over zealous" with regard to the Zionist side. The Israelis alleged in excess of
50 truce violations in Jerusalem over the past three days with an Israeli
communique stating that the Arabs had shelled various Zionist held districts of
Jerusalem during the night with no reported casualties.
With in excess of 500 000 Palestinian refugees demanding the right to return to
their homes, Israel's minister of immigration was facing severe criticism for his
planned scheme for the future immigration of Jewish "displaced persons" from
Europe. The rate of admission had been fixed at 100 000 persons per year for
10 years. Critics demanded unrestricted imm- igration and the abolition of visas
or immigration permits for entering Israel.
August 27
Issa Nakhler of the Palestine Arab Higher Committee told a London press
conference that the Arabs would never accept the "Jewish State" in Palestine as
a fait accompli. "We shall not rest until this mock Jewish State is finished. We
are determined, if necessary, to fight the Jews for 100 years." He pointed out
that Britain and America should think carefully about the motives of Russia in
supporting the Zionists in Palestine. Sixty per cent of the Jewish Zionists who
had entered Palestine since the war, he claimed, were of Slav origin.
Jerusalem was the focus of military action which threatened to bring the truce
to the brink. It developed into a major gun duel, with shells crashing into
various parts of the town with the outer suburbs of southern Jerusalem bearing
the brunt. The Israeli shelling was concentrated on Egyptian batteries near
Bethlehem.
It was left to the UN truce observers to make an early start to their day in
order to find who started this latest violation. The observers ordered the Israeli
forces to withdraw from positions held along the northern (Iraq) front
accompanied by the threat of Security Council action if they failed to comply.
Jerusalem's power station was blown up at night, allegedly by Arab irregulars,
according to a report from Amman.
August 29
Conflicting reports emerged of the shooting dead of two French truce observers
who arrived by plane at Gaza. Some said the plane was shot down; others said
the white painted plane with UN markings was landing when bullets raked the
side of the plane and front wind shield. One report placed the blame on a
Notes
1 Benny Morris, The birth of the Palestinian refugee problem, 1947-49, p.168
2 Norman Finkelstein, Myths, Old and New,(Journal of Palestine Studies, Autumn 1991) p.88
3 Michael Palumbo, The Palestinian Catastrophe, p.149-150
4 ibid p.149
5 The Times 5/8/48
6 Palumbo, p.156
7 Morris, p.147
8 The Scotsman 12/8/48
9 Morris, p.140
10 ibid p.215
11 The Scotsman 18/8/48
12 Palumbo, p.143
13 The Times 19/8/48
14 Benny Morris, Falsifying the Record, (JoPS, Spring 1995) p.49
15 Palumbo, p.157
16 Benny Morris, Operation Hiram Revisited: A Correction, (JoPS, Winter 1999) p.71
17 Benny Morris, The birth of the Palestinian refugee problem, 1947-48 p.184/5
18 The Scotsman 25/8/48
19 Walid Khalidi, All that Remains, p.80
September
It would be an offence against the principles of elemental
justice if these innocent victims of the conflict were denied
the right to return to their homes while Jewish immigrants
flow into Palestine
Count Folke Bernadotte, UN Mediator
During the Second Truce the Israeli army continued to destroy abandoned
villages, usually for "military" reasons. In the Negev the armies of Israel and
Egypt stumbled through an uneasy truce with a few Zionist colonies virtually
besieged behind the Egyptian lines. The raiding war, with villagers expelled and
their villages destroyed, continued throughout this period.
Sometimes the demolition of the villages would encounter local
opposition from nearby kibbutzim. In the south it is on record that several
kibbutzim supported the cause of the village of Huj near the Gaza Strip, a
traditionally friendly village, where the villagers had been expelled eastwards
on 31 May.
In the case of Danna, a village in the north whose residents were expelled
on 28 May, its demolition was under way by September, despite criticism from
a local kibbutz leader. When the protest reached government level, Ben Gurion
denied permission was ever given with an investigation promised. Whatever the
outcome, the villagers were never allowed to return and so this particular
village, like many, many others, was doomed.
However Huj was to prove to be a textbook example of Israeli policy and
Zionist intent in ensuring that Palestinians did not return to their homes,
regardless of the circumstances.
During September, with the Truce holding and the vicinity of their village
being hostility free, the villagers of Huj appealed to Israel to be allowed to
return. As the appeal made its way through the various bureaucracies it was
acknowledged that the villagers had been "loyal collaborators", "they had not
fled but had been expelled", and had an appeal which merited "special
treatment." One department, the Middle East Affairs Department, in view "of
the commonly held opinion that an injustice had been done" was prepared to
allow them to return to Israeli held territory, not necessarily to their own village,
rather an "abandoned" village. This recommendation was a qualified one in that
its proposers would only support it as long as there was no danger of it being
regarded as a precedent.
The Minority Affairs Ministry was critical of this reservation pointing out
that there had been a Cabinet decision against wholesale return of the
Palestinians as long as the war continued. However they also supported the
appeal, going along with the suggestion that the villagers should be re-located
elsewhere other than their village which was near the front lines.
Both recommendations were turned down by the defence authorities and the
villagers of Huj were never allowed back to their village and their land.1
The conscience of Yitzhak Avira, a former Haganah Intelligence Service officer
and member of Kibbutz Ashdot Yaakov in the Jordan Valley, came to the fore
when he protested against the continuing destruction of villages and the policy
and practice towards the Arabs in general
"recently a view has come to prevail amongst us that the Arabs are noth- ing.
'Every Arab is a murderer,' 'all of them should be slaughtered,' 'all the villages
that are conquered should be burned' . . . I . . . see a danger in the prevalence of
an attitude that everything of theirs should be murdered, destroyed and made to
vanish."
The reply sought to justify the genocide which was being perpetrated:
"War is complicated and lacking in sentimentality. If the commanders believe
that by destruction, murder and human suffering they will reach their goals
more quickly - I would not stand in their way. If we do not hurry up and do
[things] - our enemies will do these things to us."2
Sometimes the position would appear contradictory. During September pressure
grew from the kibbutzim in Beisan Valley to demolish and level a group of
nearby villages - Al Bira, Al Hamidiya, Kaukab al Hawa and Jabbul. At the
same time criticism was levelled at the destruction of villages more distant Na'ara, At Taiyiba, Danna, Al Murassas, Yubla and Kafra where the view was
taken that these villages were cooperative and might be prepared to share their
land with neighbouring settlements.
The kibbutzim with a conscience were, however, the exception. The vast
majority favoured the destruction which was being wreaked throughout
Palestine. Some kibbutz demanded, and would themselves carry out, the
destruction of neighbouring villages for their own selfish reasons.
September was the month that saw the start of the occupation of Palestinian
owned houses in Jaffa by newly arrived Jewish Zionist immigrants. Both in
Haifa and Jaffa, these illegal acts were characterised by confusion, verging on
anarchy.
Impatient with living in schools and other public buildings, the empty
Arab districts were invaded and houses seized. In Jaffa "invasion and counterinvasion" took place presumably meaning that the immigrants fought amongst
themselves over the loot. "Invaders" callously evicted Arabs from their own
houses if it took their fancy. Some houses were allocated to those with the right
"connections."3
General Elimelech Avner enquired of Ben Gurion with regard to the
settlement of immigrants in Ramleh. It was opposed, at that point in time, for
political reasons.
From September into October, in coordination with the Office of the Custodian
for Abandoned (Absentee) Property, tens of thousands of acres of Palestinian
owned land, deemed to be "abandoned" were leased to Israeli settlements and
farmers. The leases were for the duration of one year since the authorities
wanted the option of redistributing this booty, should it remain in Jewish Israeli
hands, at a later date.
September 1
UN Chief of Staff in Palestine, General Lundstroen warned all parties,
particularly the Egyptians, that if the "neutralisation of the Red Cross area" in
Jerusalem was not effected by the next day, it would be regarded as a serious
truce violation. The Security Council would be informed. The Lebanon and
Syria appeared to be the only two parties to the conflict respecting the truce.
Count Bernadotte expressed optimism with regard to the situation in Palestine.
September 2
It was reported that Arab and Israeli had agreed to a cease fire in Jerusalem. A
meeting was to take place in no-man's-land to the south of the city. Attempts
would be made to obtain agreement for the widening of the neutral Red Cross
area.
Syria reported heavy Israeli casualties following a counter-attack on Zionist
forces trying to occupy strategic points on the Syria-Lebanon front.
America protested to Czechoslovakia concerning illegal shipments of planes
and arms to Israel. American citizens were involved. Despite the mediator's
request that the immigration of military aged Jewish immigrants should cease,
over 1 000 arrived at a camp near Tel Aviv.
In general, it was reported, the flow of immigrants of all categories was
on the increase. Friction between Israel's US representative in Washington and
the State Department was unavoidable when the US refused to allow Jewish
male immigrants of military age to leave from areas under its control in
Germany and Austria. Count Bernadotte was also insisting, it was alleged, that
the names of prospective immigrants should be submitted to him for prior
approval.
The Israeli Attorney-General finally filed charges against the remaining
two abducted Britons. Four of the six charges were made under the Official
Secrets Act and referred to conspiracy to collect information of use to the state's
enemies.
September 3
It was reported that, as a result of British-American pressure the terrorist Irgun
was to disband and merge with the "Israelite" army. The hope was expressed
that a similar agreement would be made with the Stern Gang. "We have decided
to give in to avoid useless civil war" said a Jerusalem member of the Irgun's
High Command. The Irgun members were now going to enter the political
arena under the banner of "Freedom Party" with the agenda of fighting for a
Zionist state on both sides of the River Jordan. The considerable funds at the
disposal of the Irgun, mainly from the United States, would be used to fund the
Party's programme.
The freighter Mala, reported to be carrying munitions and arms, arrived in
Haifa with Zionist refugees. Most had tried to land in Palestine earlier on the
Exodus, but had been deported to the British zone in Germany.
September 5
The prime ministers and foreign ministers of the member states of the Arab
League met in Alexandria to discuss the situation in Palestine. Renewed
fighting was expected.
September 6
Israel's spokesman at the Security Council, Major Aubrey Eban, intimated that
Israel wanted immediate peace talks with the Arabs. The mediator arrived in
Alexandria to try to gauge the intention of the Arab states.
Egyptian guns were reported to have opened fire on the Jerusalem suburb of
Ramat Rachel.
September 7
Israeli sources blamed the Arab Legion and Egyptian forces for the pre- dawn
battle which ended the five day "truce within a truce." Gun and mortar duels
raged across various sectors in Jerusalem. About 530 Jews were reported
injured in the battle, with mortars and 25 pounder artillery guns used.
The mediator announced that "for the moment" he was fully satisfied with the
truce situation in Palestine. Apparently a "general agreement" was reached with
the Secretary-General of the Arab League, Azzam Pasha, on the problem of
Palestinian refugees. The Arab position was that no peace settlement would be
discussed until all refugees from Palestine were allowed to return to their
homes.
With the newspaper of the Stern Gang threatening to declare a war of
assassination against UN officers in Israel, the Israeli Cabinet met to formulate
its attitude to the immigration issue before the mediator arrived for his last tour
of Tel- Aviv before preparing his report for the Security Council.
Paraguay issued a decree recognising the State of Israel.
September 8
In an operation which, it was openly acknowledged, would have been impossible to carry out inside the Zionist occupied part of Jerusalem, 15 members
of the Stern Gang - including some leaders from Jerusalem - were arrested by
Israeli troops and policemen. Arms, ammunition and machinery for printing
forged documents were seized. With the imminent visit of the mediator, gone at least for the time being - was the policy of co-operation with the Stern Gang
in the hope that they would soon disperse to various army units.
The gathering had been convened to consider details of a campaign of
terrorism should the mediator continue on his present course of action with
regard to limiting particular categories of Jewish Zionist immigrants. It
followed threats, printed in the terrorists's newspaper Mivrak, that UN
observers in Palestine, and the British anywhere, would be attacked if the
former stopped immigration from Europe and the latter refused to release those
detained in Cyprus.
Bernadotte announced that the Arabs had agreed to withdraw from "strong
positions" south of Jerusalem. This did not include holy sites covered by
demilitarisation plans. Israel rejected the mediator's proposals to extend the
present demilitarisation of Jerusalem.
It was announced that the Irgun's Freedom Party had merged with the
Revisionists, with former Irgunists gaining control of the party. The agenda of
the new party remained the same - a "Jewish State" on both sides of the River
Jordan.
Transjordan took the first steps to separate its currency from that of Palestine.
September 9
The Secretary-General of the Arab League suggested to Count Bernadotte that
Jaffa and Haifa should be placed under UN control to help towards a partial
solution of the refugee problem. This would allow nearly 200 000 refugees to
return to their homes. The added bonus would be that with Haifa under UN
control, the oil pipeline could be reopened.
September 10
The Scotsman carried a feature on the views of the Arab League on the current
situation following attempts by the Arab states to re-organise their forces in
Palestine and to better coordinate their actions at the UN. The Arabs were were
not satisfied that the Israelis intended to observe the truce anywhere in
Palestine. The feeling was that further military action was needed to establish
enough confidence for them to consider a political settlement. The second truce
had operated as much to their disadvantage as had the first.
Illegal immigration and import of arms for the Israelis had not been
stopped. On several occasions Zionist forces had seized demilitarised points actions which supported the mediator's view that only an armed international
police force could succeed in demilitarising Jerusalem. The mediator's
explanation of the Israeli truce violations fell largely on deaf ears with Arab
confidence in a settlement steadily decreasing. Recognition of the Israeli state
was not on the agenda. Any breach of the precarious truce could lead to an Arab
attack on all fronts.
On the refugee issue, relief only sufficient for immediate needs had been
procured.
Kibbutz Gazit was established on the land of At Tira in Eastern Galilee.
Golda Myerson presented her credentials at the Kremlin.
September 12
As the "so-called truce" entered its ninth week, The Times "Zionist
correspondent" reported the deaths of eight people in "Jewish Jerusalem"
following the shelling of the northern part of the city by the Arab Legion. Arab
irregulars were reported, by the same source, to have attacked a girls'
agricultural training farm in the recently demilitarized zone near Government
House. Of Israeli depredations against the Arabs, there was no mention.
Two members of the Russian diplomatic mission to Israel arrived in that part of
occupied Jerusalem controlled by Israel to take charge of Russian church
properties.
With regard to the return of Palestinian refugees, Israel's Cabinet approved the
instructions to their delegation at the UN General Assembly. With- out making
any reference to Israel's willingness or intention to allow back any proportion of
refugees the instructions said "No return before the end of the war save for
individual cases; a final solution to the refugee problem as part of a general
settlement when peace comes. In informal conversations, the delegation will
explain that it were better that the problem be solved by settling the refugees in
the neighbouring countries."
September 13
The Special Correspondent for The Scotsman highlighted a new danger which
had appeared in the Middle East - that of "loosely-formed association of Arab
terrorists gangs of hot-headed xenophobic young men who have sworn to rid
their countries of all Westerners . . particularly of British and Americans."
Businessmen and reporters with contact in the Jewish community were
considered to be particularly at risk.
"The backbone of this new Arab terrorist organisation is provided by young
Palestinian Arabs. They have seen their country overrun by the Jews and have
lost everything they possessed - homes, property, money, jobs; they have
nothing further to lose. They feel they have been let down by the British and the
Americans, by the United Nations, and also, to some extent, by the other Arab
countries. They now realise that there is a grave danger that the present
situation in Palestine, with the Jews in total possession of the best part of the
country, will be generally recognised and legalised. They know they cannot
fight openly and as an army. But they intend to carry on the fight underground "
" . . it is indeed on the analogy of the Jewish terrorists that these same Arab
gangs will be formed. And with the same purpose. 'By their outrages in
Palestine, Irgun and the Stern drove out the British. Now we will use the same
methods to drive the British and the Americans out of the entire Middle East' " a
young Arab nationalist observed.
Many had jumped on the band-wagon, espousing the cause of the exiled
Palestinian for their own reasons. "The men behind the gangs mean business and they know their jobs. Many of them, like their counterparts amongst the
Jewish terrorists, were trained by British experts in sabotage and tough tactics
during the war."
The village of al-'Abbasiyya, east of Jaffa, which first attracted attention on
December 13th 1947 (the Jewish holy day of Chanukka) when an attack by the
terrorist Irgun left seven adults and children dead, was the subject of discussion
at a meeting of the Israeli Cabinet. Ben Gurion, on behalf of General Zvi
Ayalon, the commander of the Central Front, asked for permission to destroy
the village since, by this time, the Ministerial Committee for Abandoned
Property had to approve such requests. Indications are that it was refused, for
ten days later a recommendation was made that Zionist immigrants should
settle in the Palestinian owned houses - or those that were still standing.
A similar request was made for the destruction of al Safiriyya near Jaffa
(granted),Beit Nabala, al Qubab and Qula near Ramleh (decisions not stated but
presumed granted). However, as before, the requests were made by Ben Gurion
on behalf of the commanding officer, General Zvi Ayalon. Care was taken by
Ben Gurion not to have his own name associated with the requests.
Eventually 14 villages were named for at least partial demolition: As Safiriya,
Al Haditha, 'innaba, Daniyal, Jimzu, Kafr 'Ana, Al Yahudia, Barfiliya, Al
Barriya, Al Qubab, Beit Nabala, Deir Tarif, At Tira, Qula.4
Count Bernadotte ordered Israel to allow the villagers from Jaba, Ijzim and Ein
Ghazal (who had been expelled during July) to return in order to re- build both
their shattered homes and their shattered lives. Israel refused to comply with the
order.
September 14
A number of enquiries were reported to be underway in connection with the
disappearance of former RAF aircraft from Britain. In the latest incident, a
Halifax was believed to have sunk in the Mediterranean some time in July.
September 15
The military governor of West Jerusalem, Dov Joseph, reported on the housing
situation in that part of the city. With 5 000 incomers requiring housing, many
broke into empty Palestinian property. Others wanted to improve their
conditions and so targeted the deserted and more spacious Arab homes. Israeli
officers and soldiers were amongst the offenders, with some looking for
additional property to rent. [And by early 1950 these acts of theft were
legitimised when the housing authorities authorised almost all squatters, soldier
and civilian, to stay in the houses they had stolen.]5
By mid-September, the looting in West Jerusalem had become institutionalised
with the authorities admitting that they were powerless to do anything. A
barbed-wire fence was erected around the Baq'a neighbourhood of the city,
where those Palestinians remaining in West Jerusalem were concentrated and,
in the evenings, under curfew.
The imprisoned Palestinians were preyed upon by Israeli thieves. Groups
of Israeli soldiers would burst into Palestinian houses on the pretext of
searching for "hidden arms and Arabs" while stealing and extorting from the
residents. [It was not until November 1949 that the Baq'a Palestinians were
allowed out of their "concentration camp." This was followed by the
confiscation of the houses by the Israeli Custodian of Absentee Property
whereby many Palestinian owners were regarded as tenants and forced to pay
rent to the state of Israel]5.
The two abducted Britons on trial for alleged espionage and assisting the
Arabs appeared in a Jerusalem District Court. Both pleaded not guilty.
September 16
Count Bernadotte completed his report in which he strongly supported the right
of the refugees to return to their own homes "at the earliest practical date." The
report recognised that no "just and complete" settlement was possible if the
right of return was not recognised.
"It would be an offence against the principles of elemental justice if these
innocent victims of the conflict were denied the right to return to their homes
while Jewish immigrants flow into Palestine and, indeed, at least offer the
threat of permanent replacement of the Arab refugees."
With increasing Zionist immigration into Palestine very much a reality, with the
destruction of so many villages, the report recognised the complexity of the
situation: "It must not be supposed that the establishment of the right of
refugees to return . . . provides solution of the problem. The vast majority of the
refugees may no longer have homes to return to and their re-establishment in
the State of Israel presents an economic and social problem of special
complexity."
The ninety page report proposed that Jerusalem should be internationalised; the
Negev and Lydda-Ramleh would be part of an Arab state which would include
Transjordan and the eventual West Bank. The entire Galilee area, including
those parts still in Arab hands, would be given to Israel. The report reaffirmed
the cause of the Palestinian exodus "as a result of the conflict in Palestine
almost the whole of the Arab population fled or was expelled from the area
under Jewish occupation." A significant omission was reference to orders by
Arab leaders to the Palestinians to quit their homes - the excuse, favoured by
Zionists and their apologists, which no matter how false, somehow absolves
them from responsibility.
The report made it quite clear that the mediator was aware of the widescale pillaging and destruction of Arab homes and property. He noted
"numerous reports from reliable sources of large scale looting, pillage and
plundering and destruction of villages without apparent military necessity." He
was insistent in reaffirming Israeli liability "to restore private property to its
Arab owners and to indemnify those owners of property wantonly destroyed."
The political and military establishments within Israel appeared to be at
variance with each other as regards the intent of the Arab forces. The latter was
reported to be of the view that the Arab forces were preparing for an attack.
Intelligence reports stated that re-equipping, reinforcing and improving
positions indicated the imminence of an attack. The former took the opposite
interpretation of events.
murderers, this act of assassination of a diplomat who had done so much to help
those who had suffered during the Second World War and those who were now
suffering at the hands of some of the victims of this war, Shamir's career in
public and political life in Israel was never adversely affected.
The background of terrorism against Palestinian civilians has never been
a barrier to acceptance within the Israeli military establishment or, indeed,
Israeli society.And this acceptance reached the highest echelons of politics and
society. Shamir's service as Foreign Minister, under the former Irgun terrorist
boss, Menachem Begin as Prime Minister of Israel, was followed by his
ascendency to power in the same post.
Yet Shamir, was one of triumvirate who headed the Stern Gang at the time
of Count Bernadotte's assassination. It was his casting vote that decided the
mediator's fate.6
[The life and work of Count Folke Bernadotte, in the end, seemed to count for
nothing in the eyes of the international community. Those in positions of
responsibility must answer for the inaction in bringing the murderers to justice and for subsequent events in Palestine. Maybe, with hindsight, the provisional
government of Israel had the correct perspective of the situation when it was
insensitive enough to submit a bill to the UN for 150 Israeli pounds to cover the
cost of the post-mortem and embalming of the peace mediator. This for an act
of murder carried out by Israeli citizens in an area under Israeli jurisdiction8]
Dr Ralph Bunche, chief of the UN Palestine secretariat, assumed complete
charge of the "Holy Land mission."
Commandant of the Transjordan army, Brigadier JB Glubb, issued a statement
before the news of Bernadotte's death. Referring to the interests of Russia in the
Middle East he commented that "Israel seems to be able to make the best of
both worlds. The large financial subsidies which she receives from America she
spends on buying arms from Russia and her satellites."
Referring to Britain the point is made that "Although Britain has
evacuated Palestine, she cannot disclaim all responsibility. After all it was she
who inaugurated the policy which has brought Palestine to this desperate pass."9
September 18
In Acre, following a period of caution deemed necessary because of the
presence of some 5 000 Palestinians who had remained, the Custodian for
Absentee Property along with Ben Gurion took the decision to settle immigrant
Jews in the city.
By 22 November there were some 2 000 settlers in Acre.10
September 19
The Israeli cabinet approved emergency laws banning membership of, and
providing assistance to, Jewish Zionist terrorist groups. A curfew on the Zionist
occupied section of Jerusalem was lifted, with raids, searches and questioning
continuing. The Stern Gang HQ in the Talbieh district of the city was raided
with scores of people, including teenagers, rounded up. Included in the roundup was Norman Nahum Nimri who worked in an intelligence branch of the
British army HQ, as a specialist on Arab affairs while, at the same time, holding
a top-ranking post in the Stern Gang.
Interrogations appeared to have been superficial since detainees were already
being pressed into service in the Israeli army and dispersed. While the Stern
Gang denied all responsibility for the murder of Bernadotte, blaming it on a
splinter group called the "Fatherland Front", members of the terrorist group
were reported to be seeking out any witnesses to the assassination - ostensibly
to see if they had recognised the killers.
Dr Bunche, now in charge of the UN mission in Palestine, placed
responsibility for the mediator's death squarely at the door of the Israeli
government. Referring to "prejudicial and unfounded statements" concerning
truce supervision at an earlier press conference, he felt that they could have
encouraged the callous attack on Count Bernadotte.
In Jerusalem, an Israeli report said that Ein Shemer airport was shelled by Arab
forces. An armoured car attack nearby was repulsed. Arab sappers had laid
explosive devices against the wall of Notre Dame Hospice, an Israeli forward
position, damaging the wall and injuring two soldiers. Israeli positions on
Mount Zion were shelled.
The government of Panama cancelled the registration of 10 planes involved in
the shipping of illegal arms, pilots and mechanics between Czechoslovakia and
the Arab states.
September 20
Count Bernadotte's report on his mediation efforts, where "reason and
persuasion" had failed, was published. He believed that the time had come for
the General Assembly to take firm action. At this point such action, he felt,
would not be "forcibly resisted."
The report suggested that the present truce be replaced by a formal peace,
or at least an armistice de-mobilising armed forces on both sides. Frontiers
should be delimited by a boundaries commission under the authority of the UN.
Haifa should be declared a free port and Lydda a free airport. Jerusalem should
be placed under effective UN control, the Holy places protected with free
learn then that a regime founded on lies and the fist is destined to be shortlived" was the rather ironic comment from this terrorist organisation.
There was a bonus for the Irgun members. This was the promise that the
government would not act against them for terrorist actions committed before
the proclamation of the Zionist state on 14 May.
The settlement of Barriya Bet was established on the land of Al Barriya,
southeast of Ramleh. However it was reported that the settlers abandoned the
site for "lack of motivation" apparently preferring "the seeming comforts of
town."12
September 22
An Israeli convoy escorting UN observers was ambushed in the Latrun area.
Four deaths were reported, three of which were reported to be Jewish, one
American. The Arab Legion denied Israeli accusations of responsibility, placing
the blame on the actions of "irregulars."
The Arab Higher Committee announced the formation of a "Palestine Government" in Gaza.
The Scotsman correspondent, Clare Hollingworth, reported on the situation
facing the refugees - spread between those parts of Palestine under Arab control
and neighbouring Arab countries. They left their homes in fear and now lived in
"destitution and utter misery."
With winter approaching, and in the absence of large-scale assistance,
tens of thousands could die. The gap between the temperatures for nine months
of the year, and those of the remaining three, is considerable. Palestinians are
more organised for the nine months, even apart from the fact that, for many
refugees, the few belongings with which they fled had been long discarded.
Any thought of returning home had been long dispelled by the oft repeated
Israeli radio broadcasts informing them that they would not be allowed to return
to their homes and property. As winter closed in, those refugees in the cold
areas were expected to descend to the warmer Jordan Valley where the small
town of Jericho would bear the brunt. If this had to happen, the town would be
totally overwhelmed. Tens of thousands of distressed and destitute refugees
could be expected to arrive. Given the best will and organisation in the world,
the Arab states - who do not always have enough to satisfy the needs of their
own people - will not be able to cope.
The refugee camps were considered to be "hotbeds of discontent", with
people "let down" first by the British and then by the Arab League. Middle class
refugees - those who had lost jobs, homes, property and personal wealth - were
felt to be particularly prone to heightened grievances. Not helped by the fact
that Britain had failed to make arrangements for payments of salaries, gratuities
and pensions, many were in possession of cheques issued by the Government of
Palestine upon banks whose doors had closed before the cheques were signed.
It was from the ranks of those educated and formerly well-off refugees
that "the leaders of Arab terrorist gangs will come - are indeed coming."
The article concluded with a bitter comment from Azzam Pasha of the
Arab League "that he did not expect the great Christian Powers to do anything
for Moslem Arab refugees; he had thought, however, that they might have made
at least some effort to help thousands of homeless Christian Arabs who had
been forced to flee by the Jewish terror."
September 23
A passenger plane, from Beirut to Amman, carrying the Daily Telegraph and
The Scotsman correspondent, David Woodford together with John Nixon, the
BBC correspondent in the Middle East, was shot down by an Israeli plane over
Tiberias. The two correspondents and an Arab passenger were killed as they
jumped out of the plane on its approach to the crash landing.
Reports indicated that the Israeli plane had pursued the stricken plane for about
18 miles until it crashed. Iraqi Army HQ said the Israeli plane was showing a
Red Cross and so avoided "interference." The passenger plane was apparently
following a route fixed by UN observers and painted orange to identify it as a
passenger plane.
The provisional government of Israel rejected the territorial proposals in Count
Bernadotte's report. The right to consider Jerusalem "as part of Israel" was
claimed. The issue of the recognition of the Palestinian right of return was
simply ignored. Meanwhile, senior Israeli diplomats, Michael Comay met with
Bernadotte's successor, Ralph Bunche and two of his aides, in Haifa for a two
day deliberation on the question of the return of the refugees.
A recommendation was made to the Military Government Committee to settle
new immigrants in "abandoned" villages, in the Arab owned houses. Initially
selected were the villages of 'Aqir, Sarafand al Kharab, Beit Dajan, Al
Yahudiya, Zarnuqa, Kafr 'Ana and Abu Kishk - all in the Tel Aviv/Ramleh area.
September 24
Midya Height, six miles from Lydda, was reported to have changed hands twice
during the day following fighting between the Israelis and the Arab Legion. The
Israeli road which bypassed the Latrun was under constant shell-fire as was the
Arab supply route in this sector, the Latrun-Ramallah highway.
September 26
Dr Bunche, acting mediator, called on Israel and the Arab Legion to cease fire
on all fronts and restore the status quo as it existed before the second truce. This
appeal took place as fighting erupted in various sectors, particularly Jerusalem
and al Midiar. Machine gun fire intruded into a one minute silence at a
memorial service for the slain mediator.
Ramallah radio severely criticised the mediator's proposals, blaming the
Arab states for trusting Britain. "You have sold us for American dollars" was the
accusation levelled at Britain.
No progress was reported in the search for Count Bernadotte's murderers. A
"curious blanket of silence" had been drawn over the investigations. For some
reason the government had been counting on a public willing to assist in
catching members of a terrorist organisation with which many had sympathy
and were willing to support.
The "stringent" measures against terrorist groups, announced by the
provisional government, failed to materialise. The majority of the Stern Gang,
including its leaders, were still at large. Dissolution of the Irgun turned out to be
a tactical compromise. The organisation still existed, albeit under the guise of
the "Freedom Movement" and under the same "fanatical leader, Menachem
Beigin."
The General Council of the International Refugee Organisation decided that
they could not give aid to the 300 000 refugees in Palestine. It was felt that its
present resources were inadequate to cope.
In its first comment since the plane crash which killed the three passengers, the
Israelis said an investigation was in process. The Soviet news agency, Tass, said
that it had been "authorised to deny as utterly false" the report that a Soviet Yak
fighter in Israeli hands had brought down the aircraft.
Earlier, in reply to a question regarding the fate of the Palestinian civilian
population should the Israeli army overrun populated areas, Ben Gurion's
answer had been "vague and misleading." He was now, however, forth- right
when he addressed the Cabinet on the same issue. Should fighting be renewed
in the north, the Galilee, he had been assured by his generals, would become
"clean" and "empty" of Arabs.13
On this day, Ben Gurion also met with Yosef Weitz where the latter raised
the question of Palestinian refugees in northern Galilee, an area still held by the
Arab Liberation Army. Weitz painted a scenario where if these refugees were to
be joined by those in Syria and Lebanon and the area was then to transfer to
Israeli rule - as envisaged under Bernadotte's plan - then there would be a great
many refugees to be absorbed by Israel.
The solution, as proposed by Weitz, was to "harass" those refugees and
others in the Faluja area into moving into the Lebanon and territory held by
Apart from these two arrested, the other 250 Sternists arrested were reported to
be of little importance within the organisation. The 5 000 reward offered for
information leading to the arrest of the murderers was in no danger of being
claimed.
Four military courts had been set up but apparently the prisoners had
refused to be interrogated - except those who claimed wrongful arrest. The
prisoners were reported as being "defiant, abusive and are imbued with a strong
gang spirit." In Jaffa gaol, with its steel doors and bars torn off the walls, the
military police guards were reported to be "obviously afraid" of the Stern
prisoners and not able to control them. So much so that The Times
correspondent was refused access.
Around this date, and into the first few days of October, two 'clearing'
operations were launched by the Yiftach Brigade's 3rd Battalion and a unit of
the 1st Battalion affecting the area defined by Kibbutz Tze'elim, Mishmar
Hanegev and al 'Imara. It was alleged that "enemy civilians . . had begun a
partisan operation blowing up the water pipeline, mining the road and hitting
our people." "All the Arabs were expelled," their livestock 'confiscated' and the
village wells blown up.16
The settlement of Ameilim was established on the land of Abu Shusha, southeast of Ramleh.
Notes
1 Benny Morris, The birth of the Palestinian refugee problem, 1947-49, p.152
2 ibid p.166
3 ibid p.191
4 ibid p.165
5 Nathan Krystall, The De-Arabisation of West Jerusalem 1947-50 (JoPS, Winter 1998) p.16
6 Michael Bar-Zohar, Ben Gurion, p.181
7 Amitzur Ilan, Bernadotte in Palestine,1948 (Middle East International 3/8/90)
8 Michael Palumbo, The Palestinian Catastrophe, p.160
9 The Scotsman 20/10/48
10 Morris, p.192
11 The Scotsman 21/10/48
12 Walid Khalidi, All that Remains, p.363
13 Morris, p.218
14 Benny Morris, Falsifying the Record, p.52 (Journal of Palestine Studies, Spring, 1995)
15 Benny Morris, The birth of the Palestinian refugee problem, 1947-49, p.153
16 ibid p.214
October
This is something that determines the character of a nation
. . . . Jews too have committed Nazi acts.
Aharon Zisling, Israeli Minister of Agriculture
In the United Nations, Israel adopted the position that the murdered mediator's
report did not even provide a basis for discussion. However, as subsequently
emerged, she had no desire to seek peace. With an army of 70 000, plans were
prepared to expand the boundaries of the new state by force of arms. And the
coming offensives were to be more brutal than previously.
To the north, in the Galilee, and in southern Palestine, towns and villages
which were prepared to surrender peacefully were subjected to Israeli criminal
brutality. The reasons were various. It was no longer sufficient, as had
previously happened in the Galilee, for Jewish dignitaries to whisper in the ear
of their Palestinian Arab counterpart in order to stimulate an outflow of
humanity from the villages before the Zionists arrived. Many who had fled then
thought that they would be returning soon. By October, they realised that if they
left their homes it would be for good.
With the Upper Galilee now home to many refugees from Acre, Safed and
other towns, the realisation that you should resist expulsion and not give way to
terror tactics was reinforced. In addition the treatment and condition of refugees
in Palestine and the Arab states was widely known and did not make pleasant
reading.
Yet, the Israelis wanted "Arab free" land.
Two operations to help achieve this objective were carried out simultaneously.
Operation Yoav (initially named Operation Ten Plagues) in the south and
Operation ha-Har in the southern part of the Jerusalem corridor. In the latter
Operation, the intention was to denude the villages of their inhabitants to widen
the corridor connecting Jerusalem to the territory occupied in the Hebron hills.
Thousands of people were eventually "displaced." Shelter was sought by
refugees in neighbouring valleys and caves until further expulsions by Israeli
forces moved them on.
Patrols were sent out to the Hebron hills to keep the fleeing Palestinian
civilians on the move, to ensure that they made no attempt to return to their land
and their hilltop villages. One account was given in a Palmach report by a
woman soldier "Aviva R":
"Scattered in the gulley, sitting in craters and caves....[were] dozens of
refugees..... .We surprised them. A cry of fear cut through the air..... .
They began to praise us and dispense compliments about the Jewish army, the
October 1
In the Negev small bedouin encampments and villages, east of the line from Al
Imara to Ze'elim, were blown up or burned during the first days of October.
October 2
The Scotsman's Special Correspondent gave an overview of the place of the
Stern Gang and terrorism in the Israeli state, arguing that it was a matter of
changing the outlook of considerable sections of the population. It was not
simply a matter of distributing the terrorist members about the armed forces. It
was a psychological problem. The "philosophy of terrorism" induced during the
mandate days had to adapt and change to the new conditions. The government
was no longer the enemy.
Apparently there was "genuine surprise" that the Jewish police were
prepared to arrest other Jews, in contrast to the view that a Jew always protects
any "hunted Jew." It was widely acknowledged that until the arrest of Yellin and
his lieutenant the two to three hundred Stern Gang members arrested were small
fry, consisting of large numbers of teenage boys and girls.
In echoes of more recent times, when Israeli prime minister Yitzhak
Rabin was murdered by an Israeli right-wing zealot, the point was made that
there was still a group of "pathological fanatics" at large who believed, for
example, that the death of Ben Gurion could save "the Jewish people." Threats
were still being made by the Stern Gang against members of the government,
foreigners and UN observers. The American Consul- General had stopped his
habit of taking his daughter for an evening walk.
The article comes to the interesting conclusion that one way of
eradicating this acknowledged pro-terrorist sentiment in Israeli society would
be the inclusion of "Jewish Jerusalem" in Israel. In other words, it would seem
that the answer was to give the terrorists and their sympathisers all that they
wanted.
October 3
For the first time the Stern Gang admitted responsibility for the assassination of
Count Folke Bernadotte. Further threats were made to "all other foreigners in
Palestine who impede and try to govern Israel."
Palestine's Chief Rabbi, Dr Isaac Halevy Herzog, on the day of the Jewish New
Year said, in his broadcast, "Dissension, internal conflict, and lack of public
discipline will act as rot in our young state."
Israel stated that she will oppose any UN plan to separate the Negev in southern
Palestine from the other territory controlled by Israel. Four UN observers came
under Egyptian fire as they inspected former Zionist held positions near the de-
accept its decisions on truce violations unless Israeli army representatives were
first allowed to answer the charges.
The British delegation to the UN expressed concern, shared by other delegates, at the apparent lack of interest by the Security Council in reports from
Palestine of alleged truce violations.
Of the Stern Gang prisoners who escaped from Jaffa Prison, 40 were re- ported
to be still at large. The whole episode, on the one hand, had all the elements of a
farce. The mass of troops and police called into find the escapees actually
prevented some from returning. They were not allowed through the cordon
because they did not have the necessary pass with which to enter a prohibited
area. This followed a seven hour period immediately prior to the break-out
when the Israeli army, which formed the cordon, had still not approached the
prison. On the streets outside the prison, the more "law abiding" Sternists were
chatting to their friends.
On the other hand it was an excellent example of the way the then Israeli
society and government tolerated those who took the law into their own hands,
as long as the victims were not perceived to be a danger to Zionist interests or
aspirations. Fifty years on we only have to compare the treatment of
Palestinians alleged to be a danger to, or to have offended against, the interests
of the Zionist state and those very few Israeli Jews who have ever appeared in
court on charges related to the brutalisation or murder of any Palestinian, to see
that things have not changed.
On this day, fifty years ago, a senior Israeli police official proclaimed to The
Times Special Correspondent that the escape was not important. The authorities
had not intended to detain the prisoners for long. It was unimportant if they
took arms with them because they had plenty hidden away and "they would
never shoot Jews, although they might kill non-Jews."
By this date the the Israeli Agricultural Ministry had formally leased or
approved the leasing of 80 000 acres of "abandoned" land with approval
awaited for a further 20 000 acres.
October 11
The New York Times reported that the village of Ijlil al Qibliyya, to the north of
Acre, from which the villagers had fled on 3 April, was now an internment
camp for Arab prisoners. It contained about 2 500 detainees. Apparently "not
even the camp authorities are certain how many of [the prisoners] actually were
soldiers in the Arab armies." However it was re- ported that all, except 250,
were Palestinians exiled from their home village.
The settlement of Kesalon was established on the land of Kasla in the Jerusalem
corridor.
October 12
The Special Correspondent of The Times wrote on the "Future of the Negeb"
where aerial bombardment by the Egyptians and ground fighting was
diminishing, with localised fighting dominating. Israeli military control of the
area was reported to be superficial and the purpose of the recent offensive by
the Egyptians was seen to be an attempt to clear the northern part of Israelis
before the UN is brought in to adjudicate. The future of the area was further
complicated, according to the article, by "dissension among the Arab states and
the recent crystallisation of their individual territorial ambitions."
The article praised the "pioneering spirit" of the members of the left-wing
Mapam party who were deemed to have established the "best agricultural
settlements in Israel and most of those in the Negeb." Conveniently forgotten
were the efforts of the indigenous Palestinian people whose land was in the
process of being occupied. Who were being terrorised into fleeing the land they
and their forebears had tilled for generations, in some cases stretching back to
Biblical times. It was not always the desert that these Mapam members made
"bloom", but existing cultivated land.
October 13
Four UN officers of the Special Investigating Team for the Negev, headed
by Col Gerald De Greer, arrived to check on the status of any Arab civilians
who might be left in villages occupied by the Israelis. "We emptied the villages
where the population had a hostile attitude towards us." was the reply given to
the question as to why the Israelis had expelled so many civilians.
The Team was unable to visit those villages where Israeli atrocities had
been reported beacause they were, allegedly, blocked by minefields. The
presence of these minefields around emptied villages was a feature of the
Negev. "It's necessary to stop the Arab population from returning at night." was
the reply given when asked why so many "abandoned" villages were
surrounded by minefields.
As De Greer and his Team travelled to visit an Arab village supposedly
intact and living peacefully under Israeli rule, the desolation of the area was
apparent. Harvests were rotting on the vine; some villages had been demolished
and others had new occupiers - Jewish Zionist immigrants; some new
settlements had been established. Eventually the Team was shown, at a distance
of about two kilometres, a tented village alleged to be Bedouin Arab encamped
next to a settlement. A local UN observer later confirmed that the "villagers" in
the tents had been Jewish immigrants.
In their report, the four investigators unanimously concluded that "lands
have been taken quite unlawfully from the Arab population which was
compelled to leave their villages."
It was noted that "we did not meet one Arab civilian." Force had been
used to drive them out and force would be used to keep them out.
The investigators then moved into Egyptian held territory where about
175 000 refugees were living in all kinds of makeshift shelters, exposed to the
elements. It was noted that child mortality rates were very high. The children
were particularly vulnerable to exposure and the resulting sores. Many of the
refugees had been driven from their homes in southern Palestine during the first
truce at the end of June. They had been robbed of their land and cattle. The
villagers had been "driven from their areas by Jewish mortar, machine gun and
rifle fire. . . This Jewish action happened when no armed resistance was offered
to their forces."4
October 14
With the imminent debate at committee stage on Bernadotte's proposals for
Palestine, attempts were made by the Arab parties to have it postponed until
after the presidential elections in the United States. The feeling was that such a
postponement would be to their advantage.
In a joint resolution to the Security Council, Britain and China call- ed
upon the Arab and Israeli authorities in Palestine to cooperate fully with the UN
observers and other truce supervision officers (since 11 June six had been killed
and seven wounded). Sir Alexander Cadogan added "Elements in Palestine are
seeking to eliminate the United Nations from the country altogether." The
resolution also called upon the provisional Israeli government for an early
report into its investigation of the murder of the mediator.
Sir Alexander, referring to statements from the Truce Commission, said
that a deliberate campaign to discredit the UN and the Commission in the eyes
of the Jewish community was being led by Dr Bernard Joseph, military
governor of that part of Jerusalem occupied by the Israelis. It resembled the
animosity raised against Count Bernadotte.
Israel responded, denying everything and alleging that terrorist activities
were a legacy from British rule and that the truce worked to the advantage of
the Arabs. In response, Syria pointed out that neither Europe nor America was
permitted to export arms to Arab States, while Israel benefited from the
hundreds of millions of dollars collected in the US and used to purchase
armaments from Eastern and Central Europe. In addition, arms were received
directly from America. Observers in Palestine knew of this but under the terms
of their instructions could do nothing to stop it.
The Scotsman reported on a spate of burglaries, hold-ups and robbery with
violence within the new state. Haifa and Tel Aviv were suffering from an
epidemic of car theft. Blame was placed on soldiers on leave with the
authorities being accused of reluctance to take action and the police slow to
respond to appeals for help.
October 15
The meeting of the Political Committee at the UN was adjourned indefinitely.
This followed a call by the acting mediator for the UN to set out its position on
the "Seven Fundamental Issues." These included (1) permanent peace in
Palestine (2) boundaries of the "Jewish State" (3) future of Jerusalem (4)
disposition of Arab controlled areas (5) guarantees of rights for all inhabitants
(6) repatriation and resettlement of Arab refugees (7) continuing involvement of
the UN.
The Syrian delegate, Faris al Khoury attacked the acting mediator for his
omissions and criticism of armed Arab involvement. There had been no
mention of the "atrocious acts of the Jews committed against the Arab
population." Under the mandate over 300 000 had been massacred or expelled.
"Great Britain had done nothing to protect these peaceful people." This is what
had caused Arab intervention in Palestine. However not a single member state
on the committee was ready for a debate.
On the day that the UN met to start considering Bernadotte's proposals, the
Israelis, with three and a half brigades deployed in the Negev, sent a convoy of
16 trucks to besieged settlements in the area. This was done safe in the
knowledge that the local Egyptian forces would not allow the passage of the
convoy, having announced that convoys would not be allowed to pass until the
refugee villagers of the Negev were allowed to return home. Several lead
vehicles burst into flames, with the blame levelled at the Egyptians. A
subsequent UN report indicated that the Zionists had blown up their own trucks.
However, this was then used as a pretext to launch savage attacks on dozens of
villages. Operation Ten Plagues commenced, resulting in an exodus of tens of
thousands of new and old refugees to the Hebron hills and the Gaza Strip.
In the following three weeks of hostilities, Count Bernadotte's proposal
that the Negev be apportioned to the Palestinians in return for ceding Western
Galilee to Israel, suffered a fatal blow.
Gaza, al-Majdal and Barbara were bombed and strafed by Israeli planes.
October 16
Israeli forces made a second unsuccessful attempt (following an earlier attempt
on 28 July ) to capture the village of Iraq el Manshiya in the Gaza Strip. Before
being beaten back by Egyptian forces, an armoured column stormed and "shot
up" the village, killing some Egyptians.
October 17
Accompanied by air attacks, the Israeli navy shelled the Gaza Strip, precipitating further flight from the coastal communities. Hundreds were, according to reports, killed or injured near the railway station.
However, as usual, the media concentrated on military objectives and
operations, not the effect on the terrorised Palestinian villager. Both Egyptian
and Israeli rejected a UN demand for a cease-fire. Israeli planes attacked al
Majdal, al Faluja in the northern Negev and al Arish on the Egyptian frontier.
Convoys and infantry units were harassed by Israeli fighter-bombers. Egyptian
spitfires were fighting back, shelling Zionist settlements to the east of Gaza.
The Israeli Palmach adopted guerrilla tactics behind Egyptian lines. with their
forces capturing a "tactically important height", after heavy hand-to-hand
fighting, somewhere in the Negev. The Egyptian counter attack was eventually
driven off.
Israeli HQ insisted that the only purpose of this offensive was to keep
open the road to the Negev, to enable food and other supplies to reach the
settlements. It was not regarded as a resumption of the war with Egypt. With
correspondents not allowed to enter the area it was believed that Israeli attacks
were ranging far and wide, a battle for the Negev was in process, "which is
certainly the covert intention of Israel" stated The Times.
The situation in Jerusalem district was reported to be deteriorating rapidly, with
positions on Mount Zion changing hands several times over short periods. Both
sides used large calibre mortars, resulting in the destruction of some buildings.
The French Consul-General complained of "brutal shelling" by the Arab Legion
of the French Benedictine Church of the Dormition on Mount Zion.
October 18
Reports indicated that following quick, decisive attacks by Israeli motorised
columns, the Egyptian front had crumbled, leaving a beleaguered bastion at
Faluja in the Negev. Occasional shell bursts were the only "obstacle" to Israeli
movement in the area. The Egyptians were now in an untenable position. With
the Israelis having achieved there objective of relieving the settlements, any
further Israeli aggression was viewed as "covert design to occupy the Negeb."
The occupation of the Negev was reported to be a priority for two
reasons, communications and settling of immigrants. The northern Negev
totalled about one million acres, about half of Palestine, and was considered to
be a potential home to 250 000 Zionist immigrants over the next 10 years - once
the area was "cleansed" of the indigenous Palestinians.
Although not prepared to order a cease-fire, Israel indicated that it was
prepared to discuss with Egypt means of peacefully settling their basic
"difficulties."
October 21
The Israeli provisional government claimed it was prepared to accept a ceasefire as long as the Egyptians, and the irregular fighters, accepted likewise. The
Egyptian response had still not been received by the afternoon but observers
reported that Israel was doing its utmost to delay calling a cease-fire until her
objectives had been achieved.
The date of the capture of Deir Sunayd, scene of an earlier battle in May with
the Egyptians , was approximate. It had suffered bombing by Israeli planes four
or five days earlier and on this day, it was further "pummelled".
Al Majdal, in the south, was subject to both air and sea attack. Israeli intelligence reported that a "wave of fear" passed over the local inhabitants.
Demonstrations took place in protest against the inability of the Egyptian army
to protect the civilians.
The historical village of Hiribya, in the Gaza Strip, was established on a
Canaanite site with clear indications of habitation in antiquity. During
Operation Yo'av it was one of many subject to an aerial attack. Eventual capture
was reckoned to have taken place at the end of the Operation in November.
The village of al Jura was also bombed by Israeli planes, with the villagers
fleeing to safety in the Gaza Strip. Beit Wettif, which dominated the FalujaJerusalem road was captured.
The village of Beit 'Itab, in the Jerusalem corridor, was captured during
Operation ha-Har. Identified with the town of Enadab in the 4th century AD, all
that now remains are heaps of rubble along with the remains of a crusader
castle.
Similarly occupied, in proximity to Beit 'Itab was the village of Deir al
Shaykh. Some villagers had fled, others were expelled. Al Qabu, the site of
Qobi during the Roman period, suffered the same fate when the Sixth Battalion
of the Har'el Brigade invaded the village. The inhabitants either fled or were
expelled. Ras Abu 'Ammar, Khirbat al 'Umur and Khirbat al Tannur suffered the
same fate as the rest.
Three Battalions, drawn from three different Brigades, conquered
Beersheba after a seven hour battle with most of the population, numbering
thousands, being driven out to seek refuge in the Hebron hills. Extensive
looting then followed. This followed a battle where the town's defences had
been damaged by air raids. Before the final infantry assault, the Egyptian
defenders had been bombed and strafed. This victory by the Israelis altered the
whole strategic balance in southern Palestine.
The official report on this operation spoke of the Beersheba population
being transferred to Egypt "at their own request." Ben Gurion knew differently,
expressing his approval with the comment "Land with Arabs on it and land
without Arabs on it are two very different types of land." He was, however,
apparently annoyed by the looting and excessive brutality. His diary noted "the
army failed to control its men."6
On this day Ben Gurion declared "The Arabs of the Land of Israel have only
one function left to them - to run away."7
October 22
Gaza, the seat of the recently proclaimed "Arab Government for Palestine", was
heavily bombed with Israeli troops pushing close by. Beit Hanoun was reported
to be captured. The Egyptian forces were reported to be "badly mauled" with no
lines of communication and cohesive command. It was announced that both
sides had ordered their troops to obey the order for a cease-fire. By 3pm the
Negev was "fairly quiet".
The Times concluded its report by observing the nature of this short military
campaign. Commenting on the shortcomings of the Egyptian forces, apparently
many officers surrendered voluntarily, it was only the Sudanese soldiers who
fought well, with the other Arab states observing strict neutrality. Even a minor
counter-offensive by the Arab Legion from Latrun would have seriously
inconvenienced the Israelis. It concluded by stating "It is obvious that
dissension among members of the Arab League is deeper than the most
optimistic Israeli previously dared to imagine."
The New York Times reported on the situation on the southern front "Arab
village after village lay deserted, some battered beyond repair and still burning
where the Egyptians had held out. From all, however, whether destroyed or not,
the Arabs had fled to the coastal strip still in Egyptian hands.8
Beit Nattif, to the north of Hebron, was captured by the Fourth Battalion of the
Ha'rel Brigade. One report indicated that "the inhabitants fled for their lives"
with another reporting "some light resistance." It was a strategically located
village and victim of the stated aim to drive out refugees from nearby villages
to the south.
In the same area, Ra'na fell into Israeli hands. Those residents who had
not fled to the hills for safety, before the arrival of the occupiers, were expelled
towards Hebron. Nearby Zikrin and 'Allar al Fawqa suffered the same fate.
In the north of Palestine, Operation Hiram pushed the Israelis forward along the
line from the villages of al Nabi Yusha' to Manara thus extending Israeli control
over the length of the Lebanese border. The villagers of al Nabi Yusha' fled or
Following a night raid on Beit Jibrin and Al Qubeiba, "panic flight" took place
from the two villages. This was followed by flight from Tarqumiya which
expected to be next in the line of attack. Around this time King Abdullah sent
the Arab Legion to both Hebron and Bethlehem to prop up the Egyptian forces
which were on the verge of collapse.
October 25
By this date only a few hundred people remained in Beersheba. These were
mostly women, children and the sick. With the exception of 100 able bodied
civilian men, the rest were expelled to Gaza. The men were depl- oyed to clean
the town up before being sent to a POW camp. The town, it soon emerged, was
extensively looted by the occupying troops.
A graphic account of Beersheba, and the Negev in general, was given by
The Times' own correspondent.
The report indicated that areas of the Negeb recently won by the Israeli army
were now empty and silent except for army traffic. The Arab villages were
deserted, with their "miserable houses" looted, and many burnt. The inhabitants,
estimated to be about 20,000 - a number which had been swollen considerably
by refugees from the north - had fled with no one knowing, or apparently
caring, where they have gone.
It was obvious that most of them fled in panic, leaving behind the cloaks,
sheepskins, and blankets so necessary if they were to survive the cold nights in
the Hebron hills. The authorities in the Transjordan, where it was believed most
of the refugees were wandering, would find it difficult to care for them, and it
was hoped that the refugee relief section of the United Nations mission in
Palestine would increase its efforts to help the victims.
In Beersheba itself, once a thriving centre of camel trading, a few
inhabitants remained alongside members of the Israeli Army who were
systematically looting the houses which survived the bombing. The article
observed that it is perhaps a tacitly accepted rule of war that troops should make
themselves "comfortable" at the expense of the vanquished, but it was difficult
to excuse the behaviour of some, who ridiculed Islamic dvotions in a desecrated
mosque.
In this "pleasingly designed building" holy books had been torn and
strewn over the floor. Israeli soldiers attempted to amuse their female
compatriots by imitating the Iman's call to prayer. All this was in sharp contrast
to the care taken by the Israeli Army to guarantee the sanctity of Christian holy
places elsewhere, and to those correspondents who that very day had visited the
Imperial war cemetery just outside the town. In spite of the difficulties under
which they worked, the Arab caretakers, to the last, had obviously tended with
care the graves of the British and Australian soldiers who died there in 1917.
with a further considerable force of soldiers cut off in the Majdal region. With
between 20 000 to 30 000 troops committed to the Negev, Egyptian casualties
and prisoners were reckoned to be about 2 000 in number.
October 28
Ben Gurion announced that Israel would never withdraw from the Negev but
wanted peace with Egypt.
The Security Council begun a debate over a joint British and Chinese resolution
calling for an economic and diplomatic boycott of Israel and Egypt if both
failed to return to their pre-truce lines in the Negev.
The British representative expressed concern that if the Zionists were
allowed to remain in their present positions all the Council's actions in Palestine
would be nullified to a great extent. The Israeli representative, with a touch of
sarcasm but with no reported hint of irony or hypocrisy, stated that the Council
and the mediator wanted to bestow upon the Egyptian forces the success they
could not achieve themselves. They were to advance in front of the banner of
the UN while the Israelis fragmented to their previous positions.
Arab spokesmen were quick to point out that the Zionists, in talking of
Arab invasion of the Negev, overlooked another invasion which was carried out
under the "complacent eyes" of the League of Nations which the UN was now
being asked to endorse. There were no Jewish refugees but countless Arab
refugees were fleeing for their lives.
The debate was adjourned to the following day.
Egyptian forces started to withdraw from forward positions in southern
Palestine. Lack of food and water was felt to be a contributing factor. The
Times commented that for the first time the whole British Press had hailed
Israel's victories and had not concealed its satisfaction at Egypt's defeat.
The third stage of Operation Yoav began in the Hebron foothills and along the
coast. Once again expulsions and "panic flight" took place.
This was possibly the day that Dimra, in the Gaza Strip, was occupied. Since
May, Dimra had been the home to many refugees from nearby Huj, whose
residents had been, repeatedly, prevented from returning to their village. The
historic town of Isdud, which ten days earlier had been subjected to Israeli air
force bombing three days in succession, fell. The majority of the townspeople
had earlier fled with the retreating Egyptian forces. About 300 remaining
villagers had flown the white flag but were almost immediately expelled despite an Israeli communique which would have its readers believe that the
Israeli forces had entered the town at the request of a delegation from the
townspeople.10
received by 'Al ha- Mishmar was never published. It was decided that its
publication would harm Israel and Mapam would be "lambasted" for it.]
In 1984 the Israeli daily Hadashot interviewed the village mukhtar. He
recalled:
"The people fled, and everyone they saw in the houses, they shot and killed.
They also killed people in the streets. . . . two tanks passed Darawish Mosque.
About 75 old people were there, who had come early for Friday prayers . . .
They were all killed."
The mukhtar said that about 35 families were hiding in caves outside the
village, including some from the previously occupied village of al Qubayba.
The Israeli forces discovered them:
"They told them to come out and get into line and start to walk. And as they
started to walk, they were shot by machine guns from two sides . . We sent
people there that night, who collected the bodies, and put them into a cistern,
and buried them."
In 1984 the mukhtar paid a visit to the village site in the company of an Israeli
journalist. His first visit since the massacre. He showed the journalist where his
home had been and the cistern. Later the journalist returned with four labourers
to excavate the cistern. They discovered several human bones, including three
skulls - one was a child's. The excavation was stopped and the bones reburied.
Investigations into the massacre were launched but no findings ever
published. They ended with the issuing of rules on treatment of Arab prisoners
and, according to one report, a few soldiers were disciplined.
Some investigations came to the conclusion that "many there are [former
members of] the LHI [Stern Gang], Frenchmen, Moroccans, who tend to bad
behaviour."
Ben Gurion, in his diary, referred briefly to "rumours" that the army had
"slaughtered 70-80 people." Soldier eyewitnesses to these events concluded that
"cultured officers . . . had turned into base murderers and this not in the heat of
the battle . . .but out of a system of expulsion and destruction. The less Arabs
remained - the better. This principle is the political motor for the expulsions
and the atrocities."12
[In December, a general discussion of atrocities at ministerial level brought up
the events at al Dawayima. Agricultural minister, Aharon Zisling, said "This is
something that determines the character of the nation . . . Jews too have
committed Nazi acts." He agreed with other ministers that, in order to preserve
Israel's image, nothing should be admitted.12]
Later, near Tarshiha, Carmel came across a 16 year old youth "sitting by the
roadside, naked as the day he was born and smiling at our passing car." He
recorded how some Israeli soldiers regarded the columns of refugees with
astonishment and "great sadness." One unit ate no food that day because all the
food sent by the company kitchen was given to the refugees.14
North of Acre, Deir al Qasi and Tarshiha were both captured. The villagers were
not expelled during the attack. However, Israeli cabinet discussions on 9
January 1949 sealed the villagers' fate when it was decided to "encourage
introducing olim (Jewish Zionist immigrants) into all the abandoned villages
in the Galilee."15 The villagers of Kafr 'Inan, likewise, were not expelled
immediately following the capture of their village. Despite excuses from Israel's
Bechor Shitrit, the Minority Affairs minister, that increasing numbers of
Palestinians together with "infiltration" could mean the need to "conquer the
Galilee anew", their eviction did not take place until February.
The village of Suhmata, with its roots going back to the Byzantine period
(cAD555), put up some resistance against the conquerors. There is no
information with regard to the fate of the villagers. It was common, however,
for "punishment" to be meted out to those who resisted . This usually took the
form of expulsion into Lebanon.
'Alma (or Alme in Crusader times), about 4km from the Lebanese border
in Upper Galilee was another village where the residents, despite massacres
nearby, decided to stay put. Since they had not resisted occupation, they were
not to be "punished" However they were, eventually, "uprooted and expelled."
The village of Dayshum was reported to be empty when units of the Seventh
Brigade arrived. It was surmised that news of massacres, carried out by the
same Brigade, had probably stimulated their flight. The same reason was given
for the depopulation of Fara and al Ras al Ahmar villages, as the Seventh
Brigade advanced through Upper Galilee, with the villagers probably fleeing to
Lebanon. In the case of the "cleansed" al Ras al Ahmar, it was renamed Kerem
Ben Zimra and by May of the following year was ready to receive new Jewish
Zionist immigrants.
Al Farradiyya, on the Nazareth-Safad road, did not suffer a direct attack
and many of its residents remained in the village unscathed. However, as with
other villages in a similar situation, moves were afoot to remove them. This
happened in February of 1949 following, amongst other factors, the
deliberations of the Committee for Transferring Arabs from Place to Place. Here
it was decided to evict the remaining 261 inhabitants from al Farradiyya (and
Kafr 'Inan).16
A very cryptic report was given of atrocities at the village of Jish by
Moshe Erem:
"Rings [cut off with?] knives. Jiz [should be Jish]-a woman and baby killed.
Another 11 [killed?] The kibbutzim are participating in the looting . Ear-rings
are torn off with ears . ."17
Eventually this particular incident of massacre and vicious thievery reached the
Knesset where an Arab member noted "When the people who were robbed
insisted on being given receipts, they were taken to a remote place and shot
dead. . . The finger of one of the dead had been cut off to remove a ring."
One of Ben Gurion's trusted military advisers, Fred Grunich, revealed that of
the atrocities he had observed, one was "the horror of the seizure of the Arab
village of Jish including the massacre of civilians."18
At Ghabbatiyya, the New York Times reported that several hundred of the Arab
Liberation Army's area garrison had been killed, with hundreds taken prisoner.
The village was occupied at the same time. The village of Sabalan was
occupied, possibly by units of the Golani Brigade as they advanced to the northwest. The village of Ar Rama was captured by Golani units. Any surviving
villagers in Marus, which had been partially "emptied" during hostilities in
May, were probably expelled by the Seventh Brigade.
Situated in the Upper Galilee mountains, next to the Lebanese border, the
village of Saliha was subjected to the terror of the Seventh Brigade. At a
meeting of Mapam party officials, Moshe Erem reported the massacre of 94
people who had been herded into a house and blown up with the building.19
The village of Mirun, according to the History of the War of
Independence, resisted to the extent that it was initially bypassed. Following the
massacre at Safsaf, the village fell to the occupiers "after most of the enemy
company defending it had been wiped out."20 Indications were that it was
"depopulated" as a punishment for resisting occupation.
When the village of Majd al Kurum was occupied, about one-third of the
population had already fled. A few days later about another 60 families fled
following the execution of 12 village men in the square by the occupying
troops.21
The Christian Maronite village of Eilabun was occupied by units of the
Golani Brigade. No resistance was given. White and yellow flags of submission
had been hung out and the conquerors were met by four priests. However the
severed heads of two Israeli soldiers were found in one of the houses. The
villagers were then ordered to assemble in the village square, in the process of
which one villager was killed and another wounded by the soldiers.
"Then the commander selected 12 youngsters and sent them to another place,
then he ordered that the assembled inhabitants be led to Maghar and the priest
asked him to leave the women and babies and to take only the men, but he
refused, and led the assembled inhabitants - some 800 in number - to Maghar
preceded by military vehicles . . .
He himself stayed on with another two soldiers until they killed the 12
youngsters in the streets of the village and then they joined the army going to
Maghar . . . When they reached Kafr 'Inan they were joined by an arm- oured
car that fired upon them . . . killing one of the old men, Sam'an ash Shufani, 60
years old and injuring three women . . . At Farradiya [the soldiers] robbed the
inhabitants of IL500 and the women of their jewellery and took 42 youngsters
and sent them to a detention camp, and the rest . . . to the Lebanese border.
Imagine how then the babies screamed and the cries of the pregnant and
weaning women."
Hundreds fled to nearby gulleys, caves and villages and some later infiltrated
back to their village. The village itself had been looted - furniture, livestock and
other movable property had been carted off by the Israelis. The churches had
been desecrated.
The death of the two Israeli soldiers was found to be the responsibility of
an ALA sergeant. There followed various appeals for the villagers to be allowed
to return and, eventually, the following November, hundreds were allowed to
return.22
October 31
In two days of fighting - proclaimed by the UN Mission in Haifa as being "a
serious breach of the truce" - the Israelis claimed complete control of northern
Palestine, having seized control of 300 square miles of Upper Galilee. While
the media reported on the fight against "Fawzi el Kawkji, the guerilla leader and
adventurer", decades were to pass before the reality of this last day in October
were revealed.
The eventual disclosures put paid to the excuse that the military operation
was in self-defence, that it was only a response to the desultory attacks by
Kawkji's "Muslim irregulars and Yugoslav, Polish and German adventurers" on
the solitary colony of Manarah.
While a cease-fire had been ordered for 4pm, the Israelis waited until they
had realised their objectives and eventually honoured it at 11am the following
day. At this juncture it was reckoned that only three Arab forces could be
counted as effective. The Syrians, to the south of Lake Hula; the Iraqis
(following a recent change of government) in the Nablus- Tulkarm - Jenin
triangle. And the Arab Legion, described by The Times as "a formidable force,
disciplined, unbeaten and unprovocative."
In the Security Council a new draft was drawn up on military positions in the
Negev, stipulating withdrawal of forces. The possibility of sanctions was
retained - with the French, the Soviet Union and the US expressing their
opposition.
"A wave of cynical opinion" was saying that the Bernadotte plan would
be abandoned. Perhaps influenced by the impact that the impending US
presidential elections was having on the resolve to address the Palestine
question, the Security Council sub-committee had put off writing its report on
the new draft. Any decision was now way into the future. Even the committee
looking at the refugees was reported to have suffered a "retarding influence"
thanks to the forthcoming elections.
A number of villages were captured at the end of Operation Hiram, but with no
clear date given. Al Malikiyya was one such. Between May and October it
exchanged hands five times. Although fortified, it was attacked under cover of
the Israeli air force and occupied. Any remaining villagers probably fled.
Mi'ilya was deserted by most of its residents having, during the previous
months, fought alongside the Arab Liberation Army. In a rare show of
"compassion", the local Israeli commander allowed the residents of this
Christian village to return.
The village of Ar Rama was re-entered and its almost 1 000 villagers
expelled under threat of death. One refugee gave an account "The people in Ar
Rama were ordered to assemble at the centre of the village. A Jewish soldier
stood on top of the rise and addressed us. He ordered the Druse present . . to go
back to their homes . . Then he ordered the rest of us to leave to Lebanon."23
[Note: Newspapers were reporting on the presence of "Druse cavalry" fighting
alongside Israeli forces.]
The previous day the mukhtars of al Bi'na and Deir al Assad had travelled to
Birwa to implement their surrender. Now, during the morning, Israeli forces
entered the villages, ordered all the villagers to a field between the two villages
where 100 rifles were surrendered:
"the Jews grouped us with the other villagers, separating us from our women.
We remained all day in the village courtyard . . we were thirsty and hungry."
recounted one refugee. Two villagers were taken aside and shot. [Another
account speaks of some men asking to go to the well to bring back water. At the
well they were shot dead. UN observers described the murders as 'wanton
slaying without provocation.']
The refugees were robbed of their valuables. About 200 men were 'selected' and
driven off (to a POW camp?):
"It was almost night . . Al Bi'na mukhtar asked the Jews to permit us to stay
overnight . . rather than travel at night with our old men, women and children.
The Jews rejected the mukhtar's request and gave us (ie the refugees) half an
hour to leave . . When half an hour passed, the Jews began to shoot in the air . .
they injured my nine-year old son in the knee . . We were terrified, the road was
full of people in every direction you looked."
The young men who had been driven away ended up in concentration camps
along with others from villages in Upper Galilee. Stripped of all their
belongings, denied food and subjected to frequent interrogations and beatings,
they were eventually released near the Arab lines at Lajjun. Shots fired over
their heads forced them over the lines into Arab held territory.
When challenged by a UN observer over the treatment and expulsion of
the young men, the Israeli commander at Lajjun denied that any such acts had
taken place. Unconvinced, the observer reported "Regardless of the denial I
believe it did happen."24
Qadas, steeped in history going back to the first millenium, was another village
which changed hands in the course of events. It was occupied about the same
time as al Malikiyya. Likewise the village of al Sammu'i, which was wholly or
partially evacuated in May, was occupied. The village defenders apparently put
up a fight since it was used, by Israel's foreign affairs ministry, as an example of
a village which resisted and was therefore "depopulated."
An oral report exists of a massacre of villagers from 'Arab al Mawasi, near
Tiberias at the end of October. Israeli soldiers rounded up 15 men, took them to
the nearby village of Eilabun and shot them. Two pretended to be dead.
However the soldiers returned and shot each of them again, in the head. Only
one survived.25
[This oral version of events was eventually confirmed when the Israeli Defence
Forces Archive report 1096/1949/65 was open to researchers. It confirmed the
massacre under soldiers commanded by Lt Z Kleinman and platoon OC Haim
Hayun of the 103 Battalion. The report was dated 2 November 194826:
On this day two squads accompanied by the battalion armoured squad arrived
at'Arab al-Mawasi (or Khirbet Wa'ra al-Sauda, eight kilo- metres to the east of
Eilabun].The adult males were assembled and seven rifles collected. At this
point a separate patrol discovered the remains of two Israeli soldiers killed in
previous military action. They were headless.
"The men set fire to the Arabs' houses and returned to base with 19 Arab adult
males. At the base the men [ie captives] were sorted out and those who took
part in hostile actions against our army were identified, and they were sent
under command of Haim [Hayun] to a place that had been determined and
there they liquidated [ ve'sham huslu] 14 of the adult males. The rest are being
free will, and if possible, to bring about the evacuation of the whole civilian
population of [the pocket]."
The outrage expressed by Israeli officials was regarded by Israeli historian,
Benny Morris, as false. The intention being to mislead the international
community about Israel's actions. Ben Gurion probably gave his approval to the
actions. However it gave a cautionary lesson to Palestinians elsewhere,
particularly in the Galilee, where the same tactics had less success.28
On this last day of October, Moshe Carmel, OC of the Northern Front radioed
all his brigade and district commanders:
"Do all in your power to clear quickly and immediately from the areas
conquered all hostile elements in accordance with the orders issues. The
inhabitants should be assisted to leave the conquered areas.29
History records that this message was interpreted as an order to expel the
civilian population.
Commenting on Carmel's orders to his commanders, Major Yitzhak Moda'i
wrote:
". . . it is clear that our forces in the Galilee did not act with restraint . .
Although . . . operational orders for Operation Hiram make no mention of the
local population [and its prospective treatment], all were aware of General
Staff/Operations stand on this score.30
Notes
1 Benny Morris, The birth of the Palestinian refugee problem, 1947-49, p.221
2 Michael Palumbo, The Palestinian Catastrophe, p.xii
3 Walid Khalidi, All that Remains, p.226
4 Palumbo, p.vii-ix
5 Morris, p.219
6 Palumbo. p.xi
7 Morris, p.218
8 Khalidi, p.94
9 ibid, p.226
10 ibid p.112
11 ibid p.491 (See: Journal of Palestine Studies, Winter 1999, p.76, Note 12 for clarification)
Palumbo, p.168
12 Nur Masalha, Recent Hebrew and Israeli Sources for the Palestinian Exodus, (JoPS , Autumn
1988)
13 Khalidi, p.497
14 Morris, p.231
15 Khalidi, p.13
16 ibid p.449
17 Morris, p.230 (See Appendix to Note 11 above)
18 Palumbo, p.171
November
They abandon the villages of their birth and that
of their ancestors and go into exile . . . . . women,
children, babies, donkeys - everything moves, in
silence and grief, northwards, without looking to
right or left.
Moshe Carmel, OC Northern Front
During this period the political and strategic aims of the Israeli state fused. The
former required as few as possible of the indigenous Palestinian Arab residing
within the boundaries of the new state. In addition, empty houses were required
for the new immigrants. The latter aimed at "Arab-less" boundaries with the
surrounding Arab states. It was the Israeli army which was to effect the policy,
with the politicians giving their approval after the event.
At the start of the month Israel's finance minister, Kaplan, complained
about the reported destruction of Arab villages following their capture and
"cleansing" in upper central Galilee. With about 20 000 Zionist immigrants
already living in tents, he observed "Every possibility of accommodating
[immigrants] must be exploited and a general order must be issued to the army
not to destroy houses without a reason."1
By mid-November the Gaza Strip's refugee population had jumped from about
the 100 000 mark, prior to the launch of Operation Yoav, to about 230 000.
According to the UN Refugee Relief Project the condition of the refugees
"def[ies] description . . . Almost all of them are living in the open . . . [and are]
receiving no regular rations of food . . . There are no sanitary facilities . . . and
conditions of horrifying filth exist."2 Blame was laid at the door of the Egyptian
Army and the Arab Higher Refugee Council.
Throughout the month the Israeli military carried out raids on the "cleansed "
villages of Upper Galilee. These were empty or half-empty, with the purpose of
the raids being to expel so-called "returnees" or "infiltrators." In other words,
Palestinians trying to return to their homeland and villages, now under Israeli
control, encountered forced deportation.
These raids followed a census carried out during the month where those
not registered during the census, did not have an ID card or military pass, were
considered to be "absentees." No matter the reason for your absence during the
census, if you were discovered without the appropriate documentation you were
regarded as "illegal" on your own land and faced expulsion. A continuation of
the ethnic cleansing of Palestine.
During the following year, Moshe Carmel, officer in command of the
Northern Front, detailed some of what he witnessed:
"They abandon the villages of their birth and that of their ancestors and go into
exile . . . women, children, babies, donkeys - everything moves, in silence and
grief, northwards, without looking to right or left. Wife does not find her
husband and child does not find his father . . . no one knows the goal of his trek.
Many possessions are scattered by the paths; the more the refugees walk, the
more tired they grow - and they throw away what they had tried to save on their
way into exile. Suddenly, every object seems to them petty, superfluous,
unimportant as against the chasing fear and the urge to save life and limb."3
November 1
The Arab Legion permitted convoys to pass through its lines to supply the
demilitarised zone on Mount Scopus - including the Hebrew University and
Hadassah Hospital.
Israeli forces refused to withdraw from their positions in Lebanese territory as
requested by the UN. With reports of an impending Israeli offensive near the
Syrian border, UN observers took up their positions in the area.
Resistance was met by the invading Israeli forces at Suhmata village in Upper
Galilee. Following its capture, UN observers found that villages in the area
were deserted and "reported the extensive looting of villages and the carrying
away of goats, sheep and mules by the Israeli forces. . . The looting appeared to
the observers to have been systematic, army trucks being used. The situation
has created a new influx of refugees into Lebanon."4
Israeli historian Benny Morris recorded that, in early November, dozens of
refugees were confronted by a platoon from the Har'el Brigade near the village
of Khirbat al Lawz a few miles to the west of Jerusalem. The Israelis ordered
the refugees to leave Israeli held territory and stole their livestock at the same
time.
November 2
The Bedouin village of 'Arab al-Mawasi was the site of a little known massacre
of 14 Bedouin Arab males at the hands of members of 103rd Battalion in
Eastern Galilee during Operation Hiram. [See 31 October for details].
The black-out enforced in the Israeli occupied sector of Jerusalem was lifted as
the provisional Israeli government met for the second day with members of the
Jewish Agency to discuss the "sharing of duties between the state and the
Zionist movement."
In the Negev, Israel wanted to bring about demographic changes - the less
Palestinian Arabs the better. Israeli officials met with Bedouin chiefs with the
aim of getting a voluntary agreement for the departure of most of the tribes "far
into the desert or into Transjordan."
November 3
A British-Chinese resolution was presented to the Security Council. It was
designed to restore the truce in the Negev and establish a committee to consider
sanctions which might be applied in the event of non-compliance.
Egyptian troops trapped in the "Faluja pocket" in the northern Negev were
foiled by the Israelis in their attempt to break out. They were believed to be
seriously short of food, water and medical supplies. Their approach to the
Israelis, to be allowed to withdraw, had been turned down the previous week.
The sole remaining Briton, of those abducted earlier by the Stern Gang,
appealed to the Israeli Supreme Court against his seven year sentence for
espionage.
General Yigal Allon, Operations Commander, cabled the commander of the
Eighth Brigade, General Sadeh, to check rumours that the 89th Battalion had
"killed many tens of prisoners on the day of the conquest of Ad Dawayima."
November 4
The Security Council, meeting in Paris, adopted the Sino-British resolution. It
had been watered down by the US but still held out the prospect of sanctions
and armed intervention. The Ukraine voted against with the Soviet Union
abstaining.
It was reported that the Egyptian forces were retreating along the beach from
Majdal, with Beit Hanoun waiting to fall into Israeli hands. The Israelis
apparently made no effort to impede the withdrawal. With the latter poised to
fill the vacuum left by Egyptian retreat, it was noted that this changed the
balance of power and "makes the debates in Paris more unreal."
The Arab League informed the UN of the raid on al Dawayima where the
Zionist forces had "ruthlessly massacred Arab women, children and old people,
thus perpetrating barbarities rivalling in horror those committed by the Nazis."
Britain proposed that Security Council "sanctions" envisaged for the Negev
should be extended to other areas.
The villagers of Barbara near Gaza were either expelled or fled prior to the
capture of the village. This followed, two weeks earlier, bombing and strafing
by Israeli planes and being subjected to military activity in the area which,
Initial reports indicated that the refugees did not respond to threats. They
refused to move eastwards, with some asking to be allowed to stay under Israeli
rule. Constant raids, patrols together with sniper fire soon persuaded them
otherwise.
November 6
A week after the atrocities carried out at neighbouring al Dawayima, a platoon
from the Ha'rel Brigade found about 150 villagers still defying all the odds and
remaining in their village of Khirbat Umm Burj. About 100 were expelled, with
injuries being sustained by the refugees.
Yosef Nahmani, director of the Jewish National Fund in Eastern Galilee,
recorded the recent events in his diary. This followed a tour of the area where
the representative of the Minority Affairs Ministry, Immanuel Friedman, briefed
him on "the cruel acts of our soldiers."
"In Safsaf, after . . . the inhabitants had raised a white flag, the [soldiers]
collected and separated the men and women, tied the hands of fifty-six fellahin
[peasants] and shot and killed them and buried them in a pit. Also, they raped
several women . . . At Eilaboun and Farradiya the soldiers had been greeted
with white flags and rich food, and afterwards had ordered the villagers to
leave, with their women and children. When the [villagers] had begun to
argue . . . [the soldiers] had opened fire and after some thirty people were
killed, had begun to lead the rest [towards Lebanon] . . . in Salhila, where a
white flag had been raised[,] . . . they had killed about sixty-seventy men and
women. Where did they come by such a measure of cruelty, like Nazis? . . .Is
there no more humane a way of expelling the inhabitants than by such
methods . . ?
It is worth noting that when Yosef Weitz published a commemorative (and
sanitised) volume based on Nahmani's diaries and papers, the above account
was omitted.6
November 7
General Riley, the UN chief of staff in Haifa, arrived in Paris to report on the
situation in Palestine. He was reported to have informed the acting- mediator
that it was hopeless to try and restore the positions held on 14 October. The
truce had outlived its usefulness and so sanctions to impose the truce were a
non-starter. He was of the opinion that the Israelis could dominate the whole
country if they so wished. Direct negotiations between Israel and the Arab
states was the only practicable solution.
He was in favour of reducing the corps of UN observers to a handful in
readiness for a more permanent state of affairs.
his troops when he said " . . .(B) [The troops] should continue to assist [in the
departure of] the inhabitants wishing to leave the areas conquered by us. This
is urgent and must be carried out swiftly. (C) A strip five kilometres deep behind
the border between us and Lebanon must be kept empty of [Arab]
inhabitants."10
Following the attack on the police station the previous day, the Israelis reported that the Egyptian forces had withdrawn from the village of 'Iraq
Suwaydan and nearby Beit 'Affa. Nothing was said of any remaining villagers.
The second day of fighting was reported in the Jordan Valley. In the Negev
fighting was also reported. Heavy artillery fire was heard in the Faluja area,
with two groups of Egyptian soldiers surrendering to the Israelis.
November 11
Ben Gurion said that "a new reality" had been created in Palestine and that the
provisional government was no longer bound by the partition resolution of 29
November 1947. With a view to future immigration (20 000 arrived the
previous month, not the expected 10 000), The Times reported that the
provisional government was looking with "covetous intent" on the Arab held
areas in central Palestine where, at present, there was no fighting. It observed
that despite Ben Gurion's disclosure that talks were taking place between Israel
and the Arab states, central Palestine will certainly not change hands as a result
of these talks.
At a meeting of the Political Committee of the left-wing Mapam, a briefing was
given which confirmed some of the atrocities committed during the past few
weeks. General Yisrael Galili blamed Stern Gang members, Frenchmen and
Morrocans "who are prone to such grave behaviour" in reference to the
massacre at al Dawayima.
Moshe Erem reported:
"52 men [in Safaf] tied with a rope and dropped into a well and shot.
10 were killed. Women pleaded for mercy. [There were] 3 cases of rape . . A girl
aged 14 was raped. Another 4 were killed."At Jish "a women and her baby were
killed. Another 11 [were killed?]." At Sa'sa, where the whole village was
expelled, there was "mass murder a thousand[?] lifted white flags [and] a
sacrifice was offered [to welcome] the army."
At Saliha "94 . . were blown up with a house."
The Seventh Brigade was singled out for condemnation. In general the
taking place with two Arab states and proclaimed that with "wise guidance"
from America the Palestine "problem" could be settled in four weeks. He said
that the Israeli troops would not abandon the Negev unless "physically forced to
do so" by UN troops.
Britain was singled out as the perceived main obstacle to peace in the
area. With no hint of irony Ben Gurion went on to proclaim "If the United
Nations means anything at all it must mean two things: a sense of reality and a
sense of justice. Any orders for sanctions would ignore these two conditions."13
The Christian village of Kafr Bir'im in Upper Galilee, with its population of
about 1 000, suffered the same fate as neighbouring Iqrit some two weeks
earlier. The residents of this "friendly" village were given 48 hours to move 5
km to the north. Despite the fact that they were led to believe that it was a
temporary move, they camped out in their fields in freezing conditions. In the
following days seven babies died of the cold. The villagers were eventually
moved to the Muslim Quarter of nearby "cleansed" village of Jish
The fate of the villagers of Bir'im (or Biram) and Iqrit has been described,
for those Israelis with conscience, as "a stain on the forehead of Israeli
democracy". The events leading to the expulsions, the human tragedy which
overtook the villagers is well documented in "Blood Brothers" by Fr Elias
Chacour. The author, a priest in the Melkite Church, was a young boy when he
and his family were expelled.
It has always been acknowledged that the two Christian communities of
Iqrit and Biram were regarded as friendly towards Israel. They had been told
they could return home once the fighting ceased. A promise which has never
been honoured. And yet the villagers have never stopped fighting for the return
to their land.
On 28 July, 1951 the Israeli High Court affirmed the villagers' right to
return to their villages. Yet on Christmas Eve of that year the army demolished
every house in Iqrit, leaving only the church standing.
Elias Chacour outlined a similar fate for Biram. Early in December when
the village elders handed the court order to the Israeli officer in command, they
were told it would take time to pull out. Return on Christmas Day was the reply.
In a joyous mood the villagers arrived at the top of the hill overlooking Biram.
They were met by the sight of Israeli tanks, bulldozers and other military
equipment. On command, the tank shells slammed into every building. After
five minutes the bulldozers took over. Not even the church was left standing.
Every four years, around election time, the account of the villages usually
reach the Israeli newspapers. The villagers even supported the first government
of former Irgun leader, Menachem Begin, because of personal promise to return
them to their village. A promise which a committee headed by Ariel Sharon
decided to negate.
During the 1992 elections, the Israeli Labour Party adopted the cause of the two
villages. Villagers who carried out protests in the vicinity of their land were
harassed and attacked by local settlers who had started to cultivate the village
land. In 1996 the government offered a compensation package (land elsewhere
and a new village) which discriminated between family members. It was
rejected.
In March 1998 the Israeli High Court gave the Israeli government three months
to make a decision as to why the villagers from Iqrit should not be allowed back
to their village. If the state failed to produce an answer, another hearing would
take place in July. Apparently the Court stated that Cabinet deliberations on the
matter cannot go on indefinitely14.
November 14
Israel received instructions from the Dr Bunche, acting mediator, to with- draw
Israeli forces in the Negev behind provisional demarcation lines to be
established by 19 November. In effect, the northern Negev would be transformed into a no-man's-land or neutral zone.
Doubt was expressed as to Israel's willingness to adhere to them, with the
spokesman repeating the refrain that the instructions lacked the "basic elements
of reality, reason and justice, and was bound to damage the prestige of the
United Nations." Britain was regarded as the villain of the piece.
By night-fall the Egyptians had accepted Bunche's proposals.
November 15
Following a week of secret discussions the Security Council met in Paris to
consider the British proposal for extending the requirements of its Negev
resolution to the recent Israeli military operations in northern Palestine. In the
event, the prior discussions had brought about "a distinct change of attitude"
towards the question of Palestine. A Canadian proposal to establish armistice
lines in the various sectors as a first move towards a permanent peace found
favour, with Britain waiving priority for her motion to extend sanctions.
Within the General Assembly, the political committee at last embarked
upon its debate of the Bernadotte report which, by then, was nearly two months
old. Israel's foreign minister, Moshe Shertok, set out the Israeli argument by
claiming that the report was not a basis for discussion. Valid territorial
settlement rested, he claimed, only on the partition resolution of 29 November
1947.
The Balfour Declaration of 1917 was invoked and used to assert that the
Zionist Jews had been promised a "national home" of 44 740 square miles.
When Transjordan had been taken away, the area shrunk to about 10 000 square
miles. By 1947 this had been reduced to give about 6 350 square miles. This
was later reduced to 5 579 square miles [Author's note: keep in mind that of this
area and the property established thereon, only about 7% was Jewish owned at
the time of partition.] The assassinated mediator now wanted this further
reduced to 2 124 square miles it was claimed.
The statement then argued for Israeli sovereignty over, and access to,
various chunks of Palestinian land.
The Negev was essential for future colonisation and immigration. The
chemical wealth of the Dead Sea should not fall into Arab hands. The Gulf of
Aquaba was Israel's "gateway to the eastern seas." Haifa port and Lydda airport
could not be considered "free." Modern "Jewish Jerusalem" was claimed (with
international custody of the holy places in the city conceded) as was the "strip"
connecting it with the "Jewish state."
Then came the claims which were to be rehearsed and repeated
throughout the coming decades. The Palestinian refugees had not been driven
out by the Zionists. Not only had the Arabs started the fighting but they had
arranged the "evacuation", sometimes with British help. Throughout, alleged
British connivance with the Arabs was emphasised.
The terror and military campaigns which historians later revealed were
given no mention. Instead the image of mass-migration, a familiar feature of
modern history, was allowed to obscure the harsh reality of genocide. Quite
simply, it was argued, the Arabs had brought about their situation by their folly
and short-sightedness. The victims had only themselves to blame.
November 16
At the Security Council the Canadian armistice plan was adopted. Britain
dropped its motion to extend "sanctions" to the Negev. A Syrian attempt at a
similar amendment was roundly defeated. Israel "applauded the central purpose
of the new resolution to move from truce to peace." Already the media was
referring to the conquered and occupied Palestinian land as "its (ie Israel's)
territory."
In the Political Committee the Arab position was not to accept either
partition or the Bernadotte report. Neither provided a basis for peace or
harmony. How could the Arabs be asked to desist from fighting when the most
fertile part of their land had been taken from them? Arab proposals, including
one to refer the whole matter to the International Court of Justice, had never
been considered.
The Egyptians objected, pointing out that the Arabs and the UN were
being faced with a fait accompli. "The Jews occupied the land, brought in a
few prefabricated houses which they called a settlement and then rushed up
troops to protect it, with the result that hundreds of thousands of the lawful
people of Palestine were being driven systematically from their homes, and
systematically put to death."
Attention was drawn to events in Bethlehem and Nazareth and to the "antiChristian strain of Zionism." Galilee was being systematically pillaged
according to reports from UN observers.
The Arab League met in Cairo where discussion of relief measures for the
refugees was followed by decisions on the situation in Palestine: Arabs will
never agree to partition; Britain and the US should not think that they can win
Israeli gratitude by trying to persuade the Arabs that their case is hopeless; an
all-Palestine Government at Gaza is to be the symbol of Palestinian
independence and resistance to Israel and is to be supported by all Arabs.
The US Consulate General reported to the US government, quoting Arab
sources on the atrocities at Al Dawayima. A figure of between 500 - 1 000
people killed was given.
On the border with Lebanon, the village of al Nabi Rubin was one of the
villages referred to by Moshe Carmel, the commanding officer of the Northern
Front, when he reported to Ben Gurion that the army "had been forced for
military reasons . . . to expel the villages on the border." In the case of al Nabi
Rubin, the villagers were forcibly expelled into Lebanon.
Carmel was ready to "freeze the situation" whereby there would be no
more expulsions and nobody allowed to return.
By this date about 100 Zionist immigrant families had settled in Arab properties
in Ramleh. Another 500 to 600 families arrived in the months to follow.
The Israeli Supreme Court freed the last remaining abductee of the Stern Gang,
Frederick Sylvester, jailed for seven years on charges of espionage. There was
no evidence to support the three charges.
November 17
Arab members of the UN Political Committee continued to express their
implacable hostility to the Bernadotte proposals. Faris Bey el Khoury, the
Syrian delegate made the speech of the day, accusing Britain of bias.
During the mandate the Jewish Zionists had been allowed to amass arms
which citizens in no other country would be allowed to possess. Meanwhile the
Arabs in Palestine had not been allowed arms "not even a knife" and anyone
found with a revolver was condemned to death. By what rights had the Zionists
proclaimed a sovereign state? In all the 14 districts of Palestine they were not in
a majority except in Tel Aviv, but the United Nations had preferred to work for
political, rather than legal, ends.
Within the Israeli Cabinet, Ben Gurion was accused by the agricultural minister,
Aharon Zisling of having ignored "Jewish behaviour" towards the Arabs for
over half a year. He was accused of pleading ignorance and of deflecting
criticism of the army. It was agreed that, outwardly, to preserve its "good
name", Israel must admit nothing. The matter of the atrocities, however, must
be thoroughly investigated.
In the end evasiveness was still apparent. One member of the "Committee
of Three" resigned. It was then disbanded with Ben Gurion given the task of
investigating "the charges concerning the army's behaviour towards the Arabs
in the Galilee and in the South." This task was eventually passed on to three
army officers.15
November 18
At the Political Committee of the UN, Britain introduced a resolution calling on
the General Assembly to accept and take steps to apply the conclusions of the
Bernadotte report. The American silence on the matter apparently spread
"infectiously" throughout the committee.
The speech pointed out that under the Bernadotte proposals the Zionists
would be getting a very high percentage of good land in Palestine and the
Palestinian Arabs would be left with nearly 100% of the poor and useless land.
It was Britain's view that it was not too high a price for the Negev to be
returned to the Palestinian Arabs in return for central and western Galilee.
Israel announced its welcome for the armistice proposals of the Security
Council if they would lead the way from truce to peace. The provisional
government stalled on the question of withdrawing troops from the Negev.
Ya'akov Shimoni, acting director of the Israeli foreign ministry Middle East
Affairs Department wrote to Walter Eytan, director general of the foreign
ministry:
"Our advice [to the army] and our view [ie, the view of the Middle East Affairs
Department of the Foreign Ministry] which were not acted upon, are certainly
clear to you: We asked that [the army] make an effort during the conquest that
no Arab inhabitants remain in the Galilee and certainly that no refugees from
other places remain there . . ."16
Sixteen Bedouin chiefs formally presented a request that they be allowed to stay
in Israel. With the fear that Israeli settlement and agricultural interests could be
sacrificed, Yosef Weitz of the JNF, proposed that if the area was not be
"cleansed" of the Bedouin, it would be better that they were concentrated in a
limited area reserved for this purpose.
In late November, Yosef Nahmani of the Jewish National Fund, lamented that
"the army continues to destroy villages in the Galilee, which we are interested
in [settling]2
November 20
Kibbutz Revadim was established on the land of Al Kheima at the western end
of the Jerusalem corridor.
November 21
A preliminary statement from the U.S indicated a marked divergence from the
British position on the Bernadotte proposals. While it supported the boundaries
of Israel as set out in the partition resolution, any modifications should only be
made if acceptable to Israel. No mention was made of the views or desires of
the dispossessed Palestinians. No mention was made of those who were
sacrificed to make the emerging Israel a reality.
The rather contradictory and ironic view, in light of the support given to
the partition resolution, was expressed that the UN should not devise a blueprint
for Palestine. The parties should be left with the burden of peaceful adjustment.
With Britain observing that the imbalance of the military situation placed the
Arabs under "duress", the scene was set for fifty years later. Let the Israelis and
Palestinians sit together around a table to hammer out a peace agreement. Never
mind that the table would seat two very much unequal partners with the U.S., as
usual, adopting a position of professed neutrality while leaning on the weaker
party to accommodate Israel's every whim.
November 22
At the Political Committee of the UN, the Soviet Union rejected the Bernadotte
proposals out of hand and supported Israeli claims in the Negev. Henry Cattan
of the Arab Higher Commitee made a scathing attack on the partition plan and
Bernadotte's proposals.
No people, he said, could agree to be dominated by a foreign minority
brought into their midst against their will nor to have their homeland
dismembered for the sake of the illegal claims by such a minority. Politically,
historically, and economically, Palestine was one entity, one homeland, in
which population, ownership, and economy were inextricably linked. From the
economic aspect partition did violence to every sense of justice.
The Zionist Jews were to be given all that was best in the country. With
Zionist Jews owning only 7% of the territory, it was proposed to give them all
the best agricultural land, including all the citrus groves, 53% of which was
Arab owned. "In the proposed Arab area" he observed, "there will be nothing to
produce, nothing to export, nothing to live on."
Canada, in giving support to the British resolution, told the Committee
that the Israelis could "not have it both ways." Israel could not have all the
territory given to it by the partition plan and also all the territory it had taken by
force.
November 23
America made sweeping amendments to the British resolution supporting
Bernadotte's proposals, arguing that they "strengthened" the British proposals. A
sentiment that convinced nobody within the British delegation.
The amendments sought to delete the British clause endorsing the specific
conclusions of Count Bernadotte, while strengthening references to partition.
Much to Israel's satisfaction, greater emphasis was placed on direct
negotiations.
Australia was, in Israel's eyes, the darling of the day. A resolution was tabled
which not only promoted the idea of local "arrangements" as opposed to an
"imposed" plan but called for Israel's admission into the United Nations.
Fourteen alleged members of the Stern Gang, including an "important" member
of the Gang, escaped from prison. The police stated that they intended to make
no special effort to apprehend the escapees and said that 173 suspects had been
released.
November 24
Syria warned that Western Europe might have its Middle Eastern oil supplies
halted if they voted for the Palestine partition plan in forthcoming UN debates.
The Israeli Cabinet gave retrospective approval to the "cleansing" of the
boundary with Lebanon. Ben Gurion gave his approval for the return, from
Lebanon, of the refugees from the Christian village of Biram - but not to their
own village. Some were eventually forced to remain in Lebanon due, it was
said, for lack of transport.
Yosef Weitz and others immediately started to plan new settlements along
the border strip. Within months Biram's land was parcelled out to various
settlements.
Ben Gurion met with his top Arab affairs and military advisers to hammer out
policy with regard to the Bedouin in the Negev. The views of Allon prevailed
and became official policy five days later. This resulted, in early 1949, with the
forced concentration of thousands of Bedouin to an area east of Beersheba.
November 25
A revised British resolution on Palestine was presented to the Political
Committee. Emphasis was still given to Bernadotte's proposals and it clearly
stated the objections to the Arab parties having to negotiate a settlement while
Faluja pocket in the northern Negev. This was regarded as a thinly disguised
threat to resume hostilities in the area.
Ten members of the Stern Gang tried to seize control of the radio station in Tel
Aviv. It was thought they intended to broadcast a political speech.
An open letter of protest was signed by three prominent New York clergymen Roman Catholic, Protestant and Jewish - against a $50 per head fund raising
dinner in honour of Menachem Begin, terrorist leader of the Irgun. The Irgun
was described as a "terroristic band" whose acts horrified Zionist supporters,
and which had apparently been repudiated by the Israeli authorities. As a
"totalitarian-minded group" it was described as reactionary and compared with
the "fanatical" Moslem Brotherhood with its funds raised from gullible
Americans and used to buy arms from Soviet Russia.18
November 29
This first anniversary of the partition resolution passed with little celebration.
Ben Gurion used the occasion to repeat an earlier statement that Israel was no
longer bound by the letter of the resolution and there would be no peace and
security until the Negev and the Galilee were settled by Jewish immigrants.
At the United Nations, Israel formally applied for membership stating that from
the day it is admitted the obligations of the Charter would be honoured. British
sources indicated the government's position that Israel should not be admitted
until the final boundaries of a partitioned Palestine were outlined.
In the Political Committee, attention turned to debating six resolutions
placed before it. The Syrian resolution apart, all were based on the partition
plan of the previous year.
November 30
At the UN Political Committee, Britain and America moved closer to
agreement when Britain withdrew the paragraph of her resolution which called
on the General Assembly to endorse the Bernadotte report. This included the
proposal to give the Negev back to the Arabs with the Israeli state acquiring
Western Galilee. Territorial adjustment between the two parties would be based
on reciprocity reached by negotiation.
In Jerusalem the Arab and Israeli commanders agreed upon cease fire
arrangements.
A plan for the construction of 96 settlements - to fill the "vacuum"created by
the recent Arab "exodus" was presented by the Jewish Agency's Settlement
Department to the Ministerial Committee for Abandoned Property. It proposed
December
We will not allow the Arabs back.
David Ben Gurion, Prime Minister of Israel.
In the Galilee, during the month of December and into January 1949, pressure
increased for further expulsions of remaining villagers and of those who had
infiltrated back to their homes. If the latter was not halted Israel, it was said,
would have to "conquer the Galilee anew." Semi-empty villages were a magnet
to those returning Palestinian villagers, with the "danger" of a permanent
increase in Israel's Arab population. In addition, Israeli settlements wanted the
land of these half-empty villages.
Yosef Weitz of the Jewish National Fund visited the village of al Zib, to
the north of Acre, and noted that it had been "completely levelled." He further
observed "I now wonder if it was good that it was destroyed and would not
have been greater revenge had we now settled Jews in the village houses."1
During this month the Israelis approved the settlement of 3 000 Jewish
immigrants in the Palestinian houses in al Majdal (to be re-named Ashkelon) in
the south. By this point in time there was a gradual change in the practice of
outright expulsion to one of eviction from one site to another. However it was
to be 1951 before the remaining 1 500 or so remaining Palestinian residents in
al Majdal were convinced that it was in their "interests" to move into exile in
the Gaza Strip.
With the end of 1948 approaching, it was apparent - as far as the media was
concerned - that the traumas of the year were fast losing their news value with
regard to Palestine. The plight of about 750 000 dispossessed and devastated
people, exposed to harsh winter conditions with very little food or shelter, rarely
featured.
December 1
The U.S. accepted Britain's modified proposals on Palestine while they were
rejected by Israel. The proposals called for a conciliation committee to assist the
negotiations between the parties. They were also considered to be a
compromise between the original partition plan and Bernadotte's proposals.
Israel rejected the giving of "Arab Palestine" to Transjordan and the proposal
for an international regime for all Jerusalem. Both Egypt and Syria repeated
their demand that the whole question of Palestine should be submitted to the
International Court of Justice
The settlement of Bustal Hagalil was established on the land of As Sumeiriya.
December 2
Britain rejected an American attempt to secure Israel's admission to the United
Nations. The Israeli application was described as "both premature and rather
doubtful." At the UN Political Committee the British-American proposals on
Palestine were defeated. The proposal for a conciliation commission was
accepted but its functions were disputed.
December 3
The UN Political Committee rejected the last of Count Bernadotte's recommendations - to join the remaining Arab parts of Palestine to Transjordan. A
three-man conciliation committee was given the responsibility for the future of
Palestine, with a vague mandate to "persuade Jews and Arabs to agree on all
the controversial issues that have torn the Holy Land apart."
The remnants of the British-American proposal included;
1] an international regime for "Greater Jerusalem" to include several famous
religious shrines
2] a UN Commissioner for the Holy City
3] demilitarisation of Jerusalem under direction of the UN Security Council
4] maximum autonomy for Arab and Jewish Local Authorities
The Syrian government resigned following disturbances throughout the country
in response to events in Palestine.
December 5
Arab delegates to the UN expressed bitter disappointment at the British
resolution on Palestine which, after passing through the Political Committee,
was "unrecognisable". The Egyptian delegate observed that the only paragraph
in favour of the Arabs was that providing for the return of Arab refugees "at the
earliest possible date." And even these advantages were considered illusory.
In contrast, Israel's supporters were described as being "highly satisfied."
"Public enemy number two" during the British mandate, Nathan Friedman
Yellin, appeared in court in Acre accused of being a member of the out- lawed
Stern Gang, along with his lieutenant. Yellin, who succeeded Abraham Stern
following his death at the hands of the British police in 1942, was caught trying
to flee Palestine shortly after the murder of Count Bernadotte.
The Ministerial Committee for Abandoned Property approved the settlement of
Beersheba. With the army objecting, Ben Gurion intervened and ordered the
the state large sums of money while avoiding the problems of managing the
purloined land. The JNF could then lease the land out to settlements.
It was around this period that, following a lifting of the ban by Ben Gurion on
Jewish settlement in Lydda, immigrants began to occupy Palestinian owned
homes in the town. Likewise in Jerusalem, a mass movement of immigrants
started, commencing with the settlement of some 150 families in the Palestinian
village of 'Ein Karim to the west of Jerusalem.
December 21
Reports indicated that an Iraqi delegation had failed to persuade King Abdullah
to renounce his plan for "unifying" the remainder of Arab Palestine with
Transjordan. Egypt, in particular was seen to be particularly vexed over the
issue, with Abdullah's appointment of his choice of Mufti for Jerusalem not
exactly designed to extinguish the flames. Egypt was reported to be re-arming
itself, making some of the armaments available to those Palestinians who still
held an allegiance to the old Mufti.
December 23
The UN headquarters in Haifa reported an Israeli combined air, sea and land
offensive against the Egyptians based in Gaza and strongholds in the Negev.
Heavy artillery, mortar and air bombardment was reported. The Egyptians
trapped at Faluja were targeted. Blackouts were imposed in Tel Aviv and the
Israeli held areas as Egyptian tanks, under air cover, attacked Nirim settlement.
This outbreak of hostilities was considered to be the Israeli response to Egypt's
refusal to proceed with armistice talks " . . with a view to defending its territory
and hastening the conclusion of peace."5
Ben Gurion sent a Christmas message to all "Israeli Christian citizens" - the
majority of whom were Palestinian Arabs - wishing them a joyous holiday,
prosperity and happiness.
With Ben Gurion believing that the Gaza Strip, and its burgeoning refugee
population, was about to fall into Israeli hands, he instructed General Avner to
take severe measures to protect the inhabitants of the Gaza Strip. Expulsions
were to be avoided.3
On the same day Ben Gurion gave instructions with regard to the arriving
immigrants, or olim. The absorption organisations were to send "ten thousand
olim" to the Galilee villages. However, opposition was expressed to this
instruction within the Mapam movement, with one opponent, Pinhas Ger of
Kibbutz Ma'anit arguing " - we never thought of settling a Jewish oleh in the
house of the expelled Arab. It is the right of the Arabs who were expelled or fled
to return to the Land of Israel-."
December 28
Egypt complained to the UN Truce Supervisory Board that Israeli troops had
opened a "full-scale attack" in the Negev. The Faluja "pocket", Bir Asluj to the
south of Beersheba and, on the Egyptian border, Auja el Hafir had all borne the
brunt of the attack. Thousands of Palestinian refugees were on the move again,
fleeing Gaza.
There were reports and counter reports that Gaza had been captured, that
it had been cut off and isolated from the other Egyptian positions.
Meanwhile the Security Council, meeting in Paris, prevaricated and put off for
24 hours any decision on the events unfolding in the Negev. The "intransigent
attitude assumed by the Israeli authorities on the situation at El Faluja" which
Dr Bunche blamed for preventing progress on implementing the Security
Council resolution of 16 November was debated.
Syria apart, Britain was the only member in any apparent hurry to
do something to stop the fighting in the Negev. The Council's Negev subcommittee had yet to report back and the three nations of the Conciliation
Committee had yet to appoint their representatives. Once again Britain was
prepared to argue for sanctions, pointing out during the May truce she had been
prepared to support sanction orders against the Arab states if they had stepped
out of line.
Israel argued that the armistice resolution had priority over the truce order
and unless Egypt agreed to open armistice talks Israel could not be bound over
by the truce agreement. Britain regarded the situation facing the Security
Council as serious, putting to test the authority of the UN in Palestine. The
situation in the Negev was not a simple breach of a truce but a clear attempt to
present the UN with a fait accompli.
December 29
With Israeli forces reported to have crossed the Egyptian-Palestine frontier
speculation was voiced that Britain would have to invoke the Anglo- Egyptian
Mutual Aid Treaty. However it was assumed that the Israelis had acted in
"error". The continuing military operations in the Negev was described by an
Israeli spokesman as "mopping up operations taking place in Israeli territory."
The UN Security Council adopted the British resolution which called on both
sides to implement without delay the truce regulations for the Negev ordered on
4 November. The U.S. found itself alongside the Eastern bloc countries when it
decided to abstain. It was noted that the position of America on the Palestine
question was in marked contrast to its stance on the Dutch breach of the truce in
Indonesia. In this latter case, the U.S. was responsible for the convening of the
Security Council to discuss the matter.
The attitude of the Arab states was one of weary disillusionment with the
United Nations. While talking was taking place, the situation in the Negev
could easily be out of control by the time the Security Council next met on 6
January.
Britain rejected the Israeli contention that the fighting was taking place
within the "national" territory of Israel. Gaza and Khan Yunis were Arab under
the partition resolution. Likewise, Faluja and Beersheba - from which the
Israelis had refused to evacuate despite an order from the acting mediator - had
been awarded to the Palestinians under partition.
December 30
Israel said that she had yet to receive the Security Council's resolution calling
for an immediate cease-fire. Once the text of the resolution was known, Israel
would give it consideration.
Fighting in southern Palestine was still going on, with less intensity but over a
wider area. It was reported that two Egyptian planes were shot down by Israeli
planes over "Jewish territory."
And so ended 1948.
As far as the Palestinian people were concerned, it was the year of treachery of
the international community, as represented by the will of the United Nations,
towards their rights. A treachery which resulted in the dispossession of about
750 000 people of their land.
It started with the aftermath of the terrorist Irgun attack in Haifa. It ended
with the completion of the ethnic cleansing of northern and southern Palestine,
euphemistically referred to as "mopping up" operations. These ensured that as
much of Palestine as possible was acquired by Israel. Acquisitions which, in
spite of many UN resolutions, Israel never intended to relinquish. In this she
was abetted by the inaction and perceived self-interests of the major powers of
the day.
To this day the Palestinian people continue to fight for their rights.
However December 31, 1948 did not see the end of the expulsions for the
Palestinian Arab.
In January 1949, the remaining villagers of the village of Saffuriya, near
Nazareth, were evicted. The village land, long coveted by neighbouring
kibbutzim, was apportioned amongst these interested parties.
The following month, under the pretext of "security, law and order" the
remaining villagers of Farradiya and Kafr I'nan, near Safad, were expelled. The
villagers of Al Ghabisiya in Western Galilee suffered the same fate. This type of